Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n lord_n time_n write_v 3,171 5 5.3797 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14227 An ansvver to a challenge made by a Iesuite in Ireland Wherein the iudgement of antiquity in the points questioned is truely delivered, and the noveltie of the now romish doctrine plainly discovered. By Iames Vssher Bishop of Meath. Ussher, James, 1581-1656.; Malone, William, 1586-1656. 1624 (1624) STC 24542; ESTC S118933 526,688 560

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

and_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n his_o only_o beget_v and_o the_o first_o bornè_fw-la of_o all_o creature_n and_o we_o must_v entreat_v he_o that_o he_o as_o high_a priest_n will_v present_v our_o prayer_n when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o he_o unto_o his_o god_n and_o our_o god_n &_o unto_o his_o father_n and_o the_o father_n of_o they_o that_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o whereas_o celsus_n have_v further_o say_v that_o we_o 411._o must_v offer_v first_o fruit_n unto_o angel_n and_o prayer_n as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v that_o we_o may_v find_v they_o propitious_a unto_o we_o answer_n be_v return_v by_o origen_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o hold_v it_o rather_o fit_a to_o offer_v first_o fruit_n unto_o he_o which_o say_v let_v the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o grass_n the_o herb_n yield_v seed_n and_o the_o fruit_n tree_n yield_v fruit_n after_o his_o kind_n 411.412_o and_o to_o who_o we_o give_v the_o first_o fruit_n say_v he_o to_o he_o also_o do_v we_o send_v our_o prayer_n have_v a_o great_a high_a priest_n that_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o heaven_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o we_o hold_v fast_o this_o confession_n while_o we_o live_v have_v god_n favourable_a unto_o we_o and_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n jesus_n be_v manifest_v among_o we_o but_o if_o we_o have_v a_o desire_n unto_o a_o multitude_n who_o we_o will_v willing_o have_v to_o be_v favourable_a unto_o we_o we_o learn_v that_o thousand_o thousand_o stand_n by_o he_o and_o million_o of_o million_o minister_n unto_o he_o who_o behold_v they_o that_o imitate_v their_o piety_n towards_o god_n as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o kinsfolk_n and_o friend_n help_v forward_o their_o salvation_n who_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o pray_v sincere_o appear_v also_o and_o think_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v service_n to_o they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o one_o watchword_n to_o set_v forth_o for_o the_o benefit_n and_o salvation_n of_o they_o that_o pray_v to_o god_n unto_o who_o they_o themselves_o also_o pray_v for_o they_o be_v all_o minister_a spirit_n send_v forth_o to_o minister_v for_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o salvation_n thus_o far_o origen_n in_o his_o eight_o book_n against_o celsus_n to_o which_o for_o a_o conclusion_n we_o will_v add_v that_o place_n of_o the_o five_o book_n 239._o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n and_o intercession_n and_o thankesgiving_n be_v to_o be_v send_v up_o unto_o god_n the_o lord_n of_o all_o by_o the_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v above_o all_o angel_n be_v the_o live_a word_n and_o god_n for_o to_o call_v upon_o angel_n we_o not_o comprehend_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o which_o be_v above_o the_o reach_n of_o man_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n and_o if_o by_o supposition_n it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o which_o be_v wonderful_a and_o secret_a may_v be_v comprehend_v this_o very_a knowledge_n declare_v their_o nature_n unto_o we_o and_o the_o charge_n over_o which_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v set_v will_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o presume_v to_o pray_v unto_o any_o other_o but_o unto_o god_n the_o lord_n over_o all_o who_o be_v abundant_o sufficient_a for_o all_o by_o our_o saviour_n the_o son_n of_o god_n tertullian_n and_o cyprian_n in_o the_o book_n which_o they_o purposely_o write_v concern_v prayer_n deliver_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o teach_v we_o to_o regulate_v all_o our_o prayer_n according_a unto_o that_o perfect_a pattern_n prescribe_v by_o our_o great_a master_n wherein_o we_o be_v require_v to_o direct_v our_o petition_n unto_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n matth._n 6.9_o luk._n 11.2_o 30._o these_o thing_n say_v tertullian_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n i_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o from_o any_o other_o but_o from_o he_o of_o who_o i_o know_v i_o shall_v obtain_v they_o because_o both_o it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v alone_o able_a to_o give_v and_o i_o be_o he_o unto_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o obtain_v that_o which_o be_v request_v be_v 〈◊〉_d servant_n who_o observe_v he_o alone_o who_o for_o his_o religion_n be_o kill_v who_o offer_v unto_o he_o a_o rich_a and_o great_a sacrifice_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v command_v prayer_n proceed_v from_o a_o chaste_a body_n from_o a_o innocent_a soul_n from_o a_o holy_a spirit_n where_o he_o account_v prayer_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a sacrifice_n wherewith_o god_n be_v worship_v agreeable_o to_o that_o which_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n write_v at_o the_o same_o time_n stromat_n we_o do_v not_o without_o cause_n honour_n god_n by_o prayer_n and_o with_o righteousness_n send_v up_o this_o best_a and_o holy_a sacrifice_n the_o direction_n give_v by_o ignatius_n unto_o virgin_n in_o this_o case_n be_v short_a and_o sweet_a philadelph_n you_o virgin_n have_v christ_n alone_o before_o your_o eye_n and_o his_o father_n in_o your_o prayer_n be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n for_o explication_n whereof_o that_o may_v be_v take_v which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o faith_n attribute_v unto_o s._n gregory_n of_o neocaesarea_n conver_v whosoever_o right_o pray_v unto_o god_n pray_v by_o the_o son_n and_o whosoever_o come_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v come_v by_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o son_n he_o can_v not_o come_v without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o that_o one_o of_o the_o special_a argument_n whereby_o the_o writer_n of_o this_o time_n do_v prove_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v true_o god_n be_v take_v from_o our_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o accept_n of_o our_o petition_n 14._o if_o christ_n be_v only_a man_n say_v novatianus_n how_o be_v he_o present_v be_v call_v upon_o every_o where_o see_v this_o be_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n that_o he_o can_v be_v present_a at_o every_o place_n if_o christ_n be_v only_a man_n why_o be_v a_o man_n call_v upon_o in_o our_o prayer_n as_o a_o mediator_n see_v the_o invocation_n of_o a_o man_n be_v judge_v of_o no_o force_n to_o yield_v salvation_n if_o christ_n be_v only_a man_n why_o be_v there_o hope_v repose_v in_o he_o see_v hope_n in_o man_n 〈◊〉_d say_v to_o be_v curse_v so_o be_v it_o note_v by_o origen_n that_o s._n paul_n 10._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o former_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n where_o he_o say_v with_o all_o that_o in_o every_o place_n call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n both_o they_o and_o we_o 1._o corinth_n 1.2_o do_v thereby_o pronounce_v jesus_n christ_n who_o name_n be_v call_v upon_o to_o be_v god_n and_o if_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o and_o to_o adore_v god_n be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n as_o christ_n be_v call_v upon_o so_o be_v he_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o as_o we_o do_v offer_v to_o god_n the_o father_n first_o of_o all_o prayer_n 1._o tim._n 2.1_o so_o must_v we_o also_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o ●s_v we_o do_v offer_v supplication_n to_o the_o father_n so_o do_v we_o offer_v supplication_n also_o to_o the_o son_n and_o as_o we_o do_v offer_v thankesgiving_n to_o god_n so_o do_v we_o offer_v thankesgiving_n to_o our_o saviour_n in_o like_a manner_n athanasius_n dispute_v against_o the_o arrian_n by_o that_o prayer_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v 1._o thessaly_n 3.11_o god_n himself_o and_o our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n direct_v our_o way_n unto_o you_o do_v prove_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 259._o for_o no_o man_n say_v he_o will_v pray_v to_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o angel_n or_o from_o any_o of_o the_o other_o creature_n neither_o will_v any_o man_n say_v god_n and_o the_o angel_n give_v thou_o this_o and_o whereas_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o jacob_n in_o the_o blessing_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o ephraim_n and_o manasseh_n genes_n 48.15_o 16._o do_v use_v this_o form_n of_o prayer_n the_o god_n which_o feed_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n unto_o this_o day_n the_o angel_n which_o deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_n bless_v those_o child_n which_o cardinal_n 19_o bellarmine_n place_v in_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o force_n he_o bring_v forth_o to_o establish_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n answer_v that_o 260._o he_o do_v not_o couple_v one_o of_o the_o create_v and_o natural_a angel_n with_o god_n that_o do_v create_v they_o nor_o omit_v god_n that_o feed_v he_o do_v desire_v a_o blessing_n for_o his_o nephew_n from_o a_o angel_n but_o say_v which_o deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_n he_o do_v show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o of_o the_o create_a angel_n but_o
afterward_o invent_v by_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n yet_o be_v it_o reject_v as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o prince_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n first_o about_o the_o year_n 792._o and_o by_o charles_n the_o great_a afterward_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n &_o germany_n which_o by_o his_o appointment_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 794._o the_o four_o book_n which_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v publish_v against_o that_o nicene_n synod_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n defend_v therein_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v as_o the_o resolution_n also_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o france_n assemble_v at_o paris_n by_o the_o command_n of_o his_o son_n ludovicus_n pius_n in_o the_o year_n 824._o and_o the_o book_n of_o agobardus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n concern_v picture_n and_o image_n write_v about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o argument_n whereof_o be_v thus_o deliver_v by_o papirius_n massonus_n the_o setter_n out_o of_o it_o 1605._o detect_v most_o manifest_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n touch_v image_n and_o picture_n he_o deny_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v which_o opinion_n all_o we_o catholic_n do_v allow_v and_o follow_v the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a concern_v they_o this_o passage_n together_o with_o the_o large_a view_n of_o 1612._o the_o content_n of_o this_o treatise_n follow_v afterward_o the_o spanish_a inquisitor_n in_o their_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la command_n to_o be_v blot_v out_o which_o we_o find_v to_o be_v according_o perform_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o cullen_n in_o their_o late_a corrupt_a edition_n of_o the_o 551._o great_a bibliothecke_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n gretser_n profess_v that_o he_o 58._o extreme_o wonder_v that_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o book_n of_o agobardus_n shall_v proceed_v from_o a_o catholic_a man_n for_o agobardus_n say_v he_o in_o that_o w●ole_a book_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v although_o with_o a_o vain_a labour_n that_o image_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v ibid._n and_o who_o be_v these_o grecian_n who_o error_n touch_v image_n agobardus_n do_v refel_v as_o this_o publisher_n say_v sure_o these_o grecian_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n who_o decree_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v and_o worship_v against_o who_o whosoever_o dispute_v do_v main_o dissent_v from_o right_a believer_n to_o which_o blind_a censure_n of_o the_o jesuite_n we_o may_v oppose_v not_o only_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a 2._o almain_n his_v own_o countryman_n who_o within_o these_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v flat_o disclaim_v this_o image-worship_n as_o by_o nicetas_n choniates_n be_v witness_v but_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o divine_n and_o historian_n of_o england_n france_n and_o germany_n touch_v the_o nicene_n council_n in_o particular_a reject_v it_o as_o a_o 794._o pseudo-synode_a because_o it_o conclude_v 793._o that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v which_o thing_n say_v our_o chronicler_n the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v utter_o detest_v and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o have_v news_n late_o bring_v we_o from_o rome_n that_o 23._o it_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o most_o assure_a that_o the_o christian_a church_n even_o the_o most_o ancient_a the_o whole_a and_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v with_o wonderful_a consent_n without_o any_o opposition_n or_o contradiction_n worship_n statue_n and_o image_n which_o if_o the_o cauterised_a conscience_n of_o a_o wretched_a apostata_fw-la will_v give_v he_o leave_v to_o utter_v yet_o the_o extreme_a shamelesseness_n of_o the_o assertion_n may_v have_v withhold_v their_o wisdom_n who_o he_o seek_v to_o please_v thereby_o from_o give_v he_o leave_n to_o publish_v it_o but_o it_o may_v be_v i_o seek_v for_o shamefastness_n in_o a_o place_n where_o it_o be_v not_o be_v find_v and_o therefore_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o image_n like_a to_o like_v for_o 135.18_o they_o that_o make_v they_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o and_o so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o trust_v in_o they_o i_o proceed_v from_o this_o point_n unto_o that_o which_o follow_v of_o freewill_a that_o man_n have_v freewill_n be_v not_o by_o we_o gainesayd_a though_o we_o dare_v not_o give_v he_o so_o large_a a_o freedom_n as_o the_o jesuit_n presume_v to_o do_v freedom_n of_o will_v we_o know_v do_v as_o essential_o belong_v unto_o a_o man_n as_o reason_n itself_o and_o he_o that_o spoil_v he_o of_o that_o power_n do_v in_o effect_n make_v he_o a_o very_a beast_n for_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o reasonable_a and_o unreasonable_a creature_n as_o damascen_n right_o note_v latin_n the_o unreasonable_a be_v rather_o lead_v by_o nature_n than_o themselves_o leader_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o do_v they_o never_o contradict_v their_o natural_a appetite_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o affect_v any_o thing_n they_o rush_v to_o the_o prosecution_n of_o it_o but_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o reason_n do_v rather_o lead_v nature_n then_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o be_v move_v with_o appetite_n if_o he_o will_v he_o have_v power_n to_o restrain_v his_o appetite_n or_o to_o follow_v it_o hereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v neither_o by_o a_o brute_n instinct_n of_o nature_n not_o ye●_n by_o any_o compulsion_n but_o by_o advise_v and_o deliberation_n the_o mind_n first_o take_v into_o consideration_n the_o ground_n and_o circumstance_n of_o each_o action_n &_o free_o debate_v on_o either_o side_n what_o in_o this_o case_n be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v and_o then_o the_o will_n incline_v itself_o to_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o last_o and_o conclusive_a judgement_n of_o the_o practical_a understanding_n this_o liberty_n we_o acknowledge_v a_o man_n may_v exercise_v in_o all_o action_n that_o be_v within_o his_o power_n to_o do_v whether_o they_o be_v lawful_a unlawful_a or_o indifferent_a whether_o do_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n or_o of_o grace_n for_o even_o in_o do_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n our_o freewill_n suspend_v not_o her_o action_n but_o be_v move_v and_o guide_v by_o grace_n do_v that_o which_o be_v fit_a for_o she_o to_o do_v grace_v not_o take_v away_o the_o liberty_n which_o come_v by_o god_n creation_n but_o the_o pravitie_n of_o the_o will_n which_o arise_v from_o man_n corruption_n in_o a_o word_n as_o we_o condemn_v 179._o agapius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o mad_a sect_n of_o the_o manichee_n for_o bring_v in_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o necessity_n of_o sin_v whereby_o man_n be_v make_v to_o offend_v against_o their_o will_n so_o likewise_o with_o polychronius_n and_o other_o man_n of_o understanding_n we_o defend_v that_o meursij_fw-la virtue_n be_v a_o voluntary_a thing_n and_o free_a from_o all_o necessity_n and_o with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr vocatione_n gentium_fw-la attribute_v unto_o prosper_n 26_o we_o both_o believe_v and_o feel_v by_o experience_n that_o grace_n be_v so_o powerful_a that_o yet_o we_o conceive_v it_o no_o way_n to_o be_v violent_a but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o inquire_v of_o the_o nature_n another_o to_o dispute_v of_o the_o strength_n and_o ability_n of_o freewill_n we_o say_v with_o adamantius_n in_o the_o dialogue_n collect_v out_o of_o maximus_n against_o the_o marcionite_n that_o martion_n god_n make_v angel_n and_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o endue_v they_o with_o freedom_n of_o will_n but_o not_o with_o ability_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o now_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n we_o say_v further_o that_o freedom_n of_o will_n remain_v still_o among_o man_n but_o the_o ability_n which_o once_o it_o have_v to_o perform_v spiritual_a duty_n and_o thing_n pertain_v to_o salvation_n be_v quite_o lose_v and_o extinguish_v for_o ●_o who_o be_v there_o of_o we_o say_v s._n augustine_n which_o will_v say_v that_o by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n freewill_n be_v utter_o perish_v from_o mankind_n freedom_n indeed_o be_v perish_v by_o sin_n but_o that_o freedom_n which_o be_v in_o paradise_n of_o have_v full_a righteousness_n with_o immortality_n for_o which_o cause_n man_n nature_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o god_n grace_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n if_o the_o son_n shall_v free_v you_o than_o you_o shall_v be_v free_a indeed_o namely_o free_a to_o live_v well_o and_o righteous_o for_o freewill_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v perish_v in_o the_o sinner_n that_o by_o it_o they_o sin_n all_o they_o especial_o who_o sin_n with_o delight_n and_o for_o the_o love_n of_o sin_n that_o please_v they_o which_o like_v they_o when_o we_o deny_v therefore_o that_o a_o natural_a man_n have_v any_o freewill_n unto_o good_a by_o
one_o who_o gehenna_n do_v receive_v who_o hell_n do_v devour_v for_o who_o pain_n the_o everlasting_a fire_n do_v burn_v let_v we_o who_o departure_n a_o troop_n of_o angel_n do_v accompany_v who_o christ_n come_v forth_o to_o meet_v be_v more_o grieve_v if_o we_o do_v long_o dwell_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n of_o death_n because_o as_o long_o as_o we_o remain_v here_o we_o be_v pilgrim_n from_o god_n by_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v easy_o discern_v what_o may_v be_v think_v of_o the_o crake_a cardinal_n who_o will_v face_v we_o down_o that_o 15._o all_o the_o ancient_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v constant_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n whereas_o his_o own_o partner_n can_v tell_v he_o in_o his_o ear_n that_o 1._o in_o the_o ancient_a writer_n there_o be_v almost_o no_o mention_n of_o purgatory_n especial_o in_o the_o greek_a writer_n and_o therefore_o that_o by_o the_o grecian_n it_o be_v not_o believe_v until_o this_o day_n he_o allege_v indeed_o a_o number_n of_o authority_n to_o blear_v m●ns_n eye_n withal_o which_o be_v narrow_o look_v into_o will_v be_v find_v either_o to_o be_v counterfeit_a stuff_n or_o to_o make_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o belong_v either_o to_o the_o point_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a only_o which_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n have_v no_o relation_n to_o purgatory_n as_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o next_o article_n we_o shall_v see_v or_o unto_o the_o fire_n of_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n or_o to_o the_o fire_n that_o shall_v burn_v the_o world_n at_o the_o last_o day_n or_o to_o the_o fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n or_o to_o some_o other_o fire_n than_o that_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o kindle_v thereby_o this_o benefit_n only_o have_v we_o here_o get_v by_o his_o labour_n that_o he_o have_v save_v we_o the_o pain_n of_o seek_v far_o for_o the_o forge_n from_o whence_o the_o first_o sparkle_n of_o that_o purge_a fire_n of_o his_o brake_n forth_o for_o the_o ancient_a memorial_n that_o he_o bring_v thereof_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v abuse_v out_o of_o the_o canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a scripture_n only_o except_v 11._o be_v out_o of_o plato_n in_o his_o gorgias_n and_o phaedo_fw-la cicero_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o fiction_n of_o the_o dream_n of_o scipio_n and_o virgil_n in_o the_o six_o book_n of_o his_o aeneid_n and_o next_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n 10._o out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la and_o origen_n in_o diverse_a place_n only_o he_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n with_o what_o spirit_n tertullian_n be_v lead_v when_o he_o write_v that_o book_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la and_o with_o what_o authority_n he_o strengthen_v that_o conceit_n of_o man_n pay_v in_o hell_n for_o their_o small_a fault_n before_o the_o resurrection_n namely_o of_o ult_n the_o paraclete_n by_o who_o if_o he_o mean_v montanus_n the_o arch_n heretic_n as_o there_o be_v small_a cause_n to_o doubt_v that_o he_o do_v we_o need_v not_o much_o envy_n the_o cardinal_n for_o raise_v up_o so_o worshipful_a a_o patron_n of_o his_o purgatory_n but_o if_o montanus_n come_v short_a in_o his_o testimony_n origen_n i_o be_o sure_a pay_v it_o home_o with_o full_a measure_n not_o press_v down_o only_o and_o shake_v together_o but_o also_o run_v over_o for_o he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o as_o the_o 2._o cardinal_n know_v full_a well_o who_o approve_v of_o purgatory_n so_o much_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o pain_n after_o this_o life_n but_o purgatory_n penalty_n only_o and_o therefore_o in_o his_o judgement_n hell_n and_o purgatory_n be_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n such_o as_o blind_o follow_v the_o cardinal_n may_v do_v well_o to_o look_v that_o they_o stumble_v not_o upon_o hell_n while_o they_o seek_v for_o purgatory_n the_o grecian_n profess_v edit_n that_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o tell_v their_o people_n of_o any_o temporary_a fire_n after_o this_o life_n lest_o it_o shall_v breed_v in_o they_o a_o spice_n of_o origens_n disease_n and_o put_v out_o of_o their_o memory_n the_o thought_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n occasion_v they_o to_o be_v more_o careless_a of_o their_o conversation_n make_v they_o indeed_o fit_a fuel_n for_o those_o everlasting_a flame_n which_o fear_n of_o they_o we_o may_v perceive_v not_o to_o have_v be_v altogether_o causeless_a when_o the_o purgatory_n of_o origen_n resemble_v the_o purgatory_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o near_o that_o the_o wise_a of_o his_o cardinal_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o and_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n the_o one_o be_v but_o a_o unhappy_a sprig_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o rot_a trunk_n of_o the_o other_o which_o sundry_a man_n long_o since_o endeavour_v to_o graft_v upon_o other_o stock_n but_o can_v not_o bring_v unto_o any_o great_a perfection_n until_o the_o pope_n follower_n try_v their_o skill_n upon_o it_o with_o that_o success_n which_o now_o we_o behold_v some_o of_o the_o ancient_a that_o put_v their_o hand_n to_o this_o work_n extend_v the_o benefit_n of_o this_o fiery_a purge_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o general_a other_o think_v fit_a to_o restrain_v it_o unto_o such_o as_o some_o way_n or_o other_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n other_o to_o such_o christian_n only_o as_o have_v one_o time_n or_o other_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o other_o to_o such_o alone_a as_o do_v continue_v in_o that_o profession_n until_o their_o die_a day_n against_o all_o these_o s._n augustine_n do_v learned_o dispute_v prove_v that_o wicked_a man_n of_o what_o profession_n soever_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o whereas_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o last_o opinion_n do_v ground_n themselves_o upon_o that_o place_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n which_o the_o pope_n also_o do_v make_v the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o his_o purgatory_n although_o it_o be_v a_o 3.13_o probatory_n and_o not_o a_o purgatory_n fire_n that_o the_o apostle_n there_o treat_v of_o s._n augustine_n make_v answer_v that_o 15._o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o obscure_a &_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o s._n peter_n say_v be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o his_o write_n which_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o pervert_v unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o free_o 16_o confess_v that_o in_o this_o matter_n he_o will_v rather_o hear_v more_o intelligent_a and_o more_o learned_a man_n then_o himself_o yet_o this_o he_o deliver_v for_o his_o opinion_n that_o by_o wood_n hay_n and_o stubble_n be_v understand_v that_o overgreat_a love_n which_o the_o faithful_a bear_n to_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n and_o by_o fire_n that_o temporal_a tribulation_n which_o cause_v grief_n unto_o they_o by_o the_o loss_n of_o those_o thing_n upon_o which_o they_o have_v too_o much_o place_v their_o affection_n but_o 16._o whether_o in_o this_o life_n only_o say_v he_o man_n suffer_v such_o thing_n or_o whether_o some_o such_o judgement_n also_o do_v follow_v after_o this_o life_n the_o meaning_n which_o i_o have_v give_v of_o this_o sentence_n as_o i_o suppose_v abhor_v not_o from_o the_o truth_n and_o again_o 26._o whether_o they_o find_v the_o fire_n of_o transitory_a tribulation_n burn_v those_o secular_a affection_n which_o be_v pardon_v from_o damnation_n in_o the_o other_o world_n only_o or_o whether_o here_o and_o there_o or_o whether_o therefore_o here_o that_o they_o may_v not_o find_v they_o there_o i_o gainsay_v it_o not_o because_o peradventure_o it_o be_v true_a and_o in_o another_o place_n 69._o that_o some_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v after_o this_o life_n it_o be_v not_o incredible_a and_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o it_o may_v be_v inquire_v and_o either_o be_v find_v or_o remain_v hide_v that_o some_o of_o the_o faithful_a by_o a_o certain_a purgatory_n fire_n by_o how_o much_o more_o or_o less_o they_o have_v love_v these_o perish_a good_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o slow_o or_o soon_o save_v wherein_o the_o learned_a father_n deal_v no_o otherwise_o then_o when_o in_o dispute_v against_o the_o same_o man_n he_o be_v content_a if_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n do_v remain_v everlasting_o upon_o the_o damn_a to_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o think_v that_o their_o pain_n may_v some_o way_n or_o other_o be_v lighten_v or_o mitigate_v which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o say_v 24._o he_o i_o do_v not_o therefore_o affirm_v because_o i_o oppose_v it_o not_o what_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o next_o succeed_a age_n teach_v herein_o may_v appear_v by_o
our_o lord_n as_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n say_v he_o he_o do_v testify_v mean_v the_o apocryphal_a appendix_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o job_n wherein_o we_o read_v thus_o job._n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o with_o those_o who_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o raise_v which_o although_o it_o be_v account_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o septuagint_n yet_o the_o thing_n itself_o show_v that_o it_o be_v add_v by_o some_o that_o live_v after_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ._n touch_v adam_n s._n augustine_n affirm_v that_o 99_o the_o whole_a church_n almost_o do_v consent_n that_o christ_n loose_v he_o in_o hell_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o she_o do_v not_o vain_o believe_v whencesoever_o this_o tradition_n come_v although_o no_o express_a authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v produce_v for_o it_o the_o only_a place_n which_o he_o can_v think_v off_o that_o seem_v to_o look_v this_o way_n be_v that_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n she_o keep_v he_o who_o be_v the_o first_o form_v father_n of_o the_o world_n when_o he_o be_v create_v alone_o and_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o his_o sin_n which_o will_v be_v much_o more_o pertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n if_o that_o be_v add_v which_o present_o follow_v in_o the_o lyrani_n latin_a text_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o old_a edition_n for_o the_o new_a correct_v one_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o et_fw-la eduxit_fw-la illum_fw-la de_fw-la limo_fw-la terrae_fw-la and_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o the_o clay_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v place_v after_o the_o bring_n of_o he_o out_o of_o his_o sin_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v reference_n unto_o some_o deliverance_n like_o that_o of_o david_n psalm_n 40_o 2._o he_o bring_v i_o up_o out_o of_o the_o horrible_a pit_n out_o of_o the_o mirye_a clay_n rather_o then_o unto_o his_o first_o creation_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o limus_fw-la terrae_fw-la may_v here_o answer_v well_o unto_o the_o arabian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d al-tharai_a which_o proper_o signify_v moist_a earth_n or_o slime_n or_o clay_n be_v by_o the_o arabic_a interpreter_n of_o moses_n use_v to_o express_v the_o hebrew_n 32.22_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o translate_v hell_n or_o grave_a and_o as_o this_o place_n in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n may_v be_v thus_o apply_v unto_o the_o raise_n of_o adam_n body_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n wherein_o he_o lay_v bury_v so_o may_v that_o other_o tradition_n also_o which_o be_v so_o currant_n in_o the_o church_n be_v refer_v unto_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n even_o to_o the_o bring_n of_o adam_n out_o of_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o grave_a the_o very_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n do_v lead_v we_o unto_o this_o interpretation_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o discover_v unto_o we_o the_o first_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o this_o tradition_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n ascribe_v to_o s._n mark_v our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v thus_o call_v upon_o liturg._n o_o most_o great_a king_n and_o coëternall_a to_o the_o father_n who_o by_o thy_o might_n do_v spoil_v hell_n and_o tread_v down_o death_n and_o bind_v the_o strong_a one_o and_o raise_v adam_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n by_o thy_o divine_a power_n and_o the_o bright_a splendour_n of_o thy_o unspeakable_a godhead_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n translate_v into_o latin_a by_o leo_n thus●us_n the_o like_a speech_n be_v use_v of_o he_o latin_n he_o do_v voluntary_o undergo_v the_o cross_n for_o we_o by_o which_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o first_o form_v man_n and_o save_v our_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o in_o the_o octoëchon_n anastasimon_n and_o pentecostarion_n of_o the_o grecian_n at_o this_o day_n such_o say_n as_o these_o be_v very_o usual_a b_o thou_o do_v undergo_v burial_n and_o rise_v in_o glory_n and_o raise_v up_o adam_n together_o with_o thou_o by_o thy_o almighty_a hand_n 239._o rise_v out_o of_o thy_o tomb_n thou_o do_v raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o break_v the_o po●er_n of_o death_n and_o raise_v up_o adam_n b._n have_v sleep_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o a_o mortal_a man_n o_o king_n and_o lord_n the_o three_o day_n thou_o do_v arise_v again_o raise_v adam_n from_o corruption_n and_o abolish_n death_n b._n jesus_n the_o deliverer_n who_o raise_v up_o adam_n of_o his_o compassion_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o do_v theodorus_n prodromus_n begin_v his_o tetrastich_n upon_o our_o savior_n resurrection_n with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rise_v up_o thou_o first_o form_v old_a man_n rise_v up_o from_o thy_o grave_n s._n ambrose_n point_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o tradition_n when_o he_o intimate_v that_o christ_n suffer_v in_o 19_o golgotha_n where_o adam_n sepulchre_n be_v that_o by_o his_o cross_n he_o may_v raise_v he_o that_o be_v dead_a that_o where_o in_o adam_n the_o death_n of_o all_o man_n lay_v therein_o christ_n may_v be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o all_o which_o he_o receive_v as_o he_o do_v many_o other_o thing_n beside_o from_o origen_n who_o write_v thus_o of_o the_o matter_n 27._o there_o come_v unto_o i_o some_o such_o tradition_n as_o this_o that_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n the_o first_o man_n mass_fw-mi bury_v there_o where_o christ_n be_v crucify_v that_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o do_v die_v so_o in_o christ_n all_o may_v be_v make_v alive_a that_o in_o the_o place_n which_o be_v call_v the_o place_n of_o calvarie_n that_o be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o head_n the_o head_n of_o mankind_n may_v find_v resurrection_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o suffer_v there_o and_o rose_n again_o for_o it_o be_v unfit_a that_o when_o many_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o he_o do_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o obtain_v the_o benefit_n of_o resurrection_n he_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o man_n shall_v not_o much_o more_o obtain_v the_o like_a grace_n athanasius_n or_o who_o ever_o else_o be_v author_n of_o the_o discourse_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o bear_v his_o name_n refer_v this_o tradition_n of_o adam_n burial_n place_n unto_o the_o report_n of_o the_o domini_fw-la doctor_n of_o the_o hebrew_n from_o who_o belike_o he_o think_v that_o origen_n have_v receive_v it_o and_o add_v withal_o that_o it_o be_v very_o fit_a that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v to_o adam_n earth_n thou_o be_v and_o to_o earth_n thou_o shall_v return_v our_o saviour_n find_v he_o there_o shall_v say_v unto_o he_o again_o arise_v thou_o that_o sleep_v and_o stand_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_n 17._o epiphanius_n go_v a_o little_a furthet_n and_o find_v out_o a_o mystery_n in_o the_o water_n and_o blood_n that_o fall_v from_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o relic_n of_o our_o first_o father_n lie_v bury_v under_o it_o apply_v thereunto_o both_o that_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o arise_v of_o many_o of_o the_o saint_n matth._n 27.52_o and_o that_o other_o place_n in_o s._n paul_n arise_v thou_o that_o sleep_v etc._n etc._n ephes._n 5.14_o which_o strange_a speculation_n with_o what_o great_a applause_n it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o multitude_n at_o the_o first_o delivery_n of_o it_o and_o for_o how_o little_a reason_n he_o that_o list_v may_v read_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o s._n hieroms_n commentary_n upon_o the_o 27._o of_o s._n matthew_n &_o in_o his_o three_o upon_o the_o five_o to_o the_o ephesian_n for_o upon_o this_o first_o point_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o grave_n and_o the_o bring_n of_o adam_n and_o his_o child_n with_o he_o from_o thence_o we_o have_v dwell_v too_o long_o already_o in_o the_o second_o place_n therefore_o we_o be_v now_o to_o consider_v that_o as_o háde_n and_o inferi_n which_o we_o call_v hell_n be_v apply_v by_o rhe_n interpreter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o denote_v the_o place_n of_o body_n separate_v from_o their_o soul_n so_o with_o foreign_a author_n in_o who_o language_n as_o be_v that_o wherewith_o the_o common_a people_n be_v acquaint_v the_o church_n also_o do_v use_v to_o speak_v the_o same_o term_n do_v signify_v ordinary_o the_o common_a lodge_n of_o soul_n separate_v from_o their_o body_n whether_o the_o particular_a place_n assign_v unto_o each_o of_o they_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v a_o habitation_n of_o bliss_n or_o of_o misery_n for_o as_o when_o the_o grave_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o common_a receptacle_n of_o dead_a body_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v thereby_o that_o all_o dead_a
three_o chapter_n whatsoever_o you_o do_v in_o word_n or_o deed_n do_v all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v thanks_n to_o god_n and_o the_o father_n by_o he_o 3_o for_o because_o they_o command_v man_n to_o worship_n angel_n say_v theodoret_n he_o enjoin_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o shall_v adorn_v their_o word_n and_o their_o deed_n with_o the_o commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o send_v up_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n and_o the_o father_n by_o he_o say_v he_o and_o not_o by_o the_o angel_n the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n also_o follow_v this_o rule_n and_o desire_v to_o heal_v that_o old_a disease_n make_v a_o law_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o pray_v unto_o angel_n nor_o forsake_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n and_o again_o upon_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n 2._o this_o vice_n continue_v in_o phrygia_n and_o pisidia_n for_o a_o long_a time_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o the_o synod_n assemble_v in_o laodicea_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o phrygia_n forbid_v they_o by_o a_o law_n to_o pray_v unto_o angel_n and_o even_o to_o this_o day_n among_o they_o and_o their_o borderer_n there_o be_v oratory_n of_o s._n michael_n to_o be_v see_v the_o like_a have_v oecumenius_n after_o he_o upon_o the_o same_o place_n 483._o this_o custom_n continue_v in_o phrygia_n insomuch_o that_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n do_v by_o a_o law_n forbid_v to_o come_v unto_o angel_n and_o to_o pray_v unto_o they_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o there_o be_v many_o church_n of_o michael_n the_o chief_a captain_n of_o god_n host_n among_o they_o this_o canon_n of_o the_o laodicean_n father_n photius_n do_v note_n to_o have_v be_v make_v against_o the_o 9_o angelite_n or_o the_o angelicke_n rather_o for_o so_o do●h_o s._n augustin_n name_n those_o heretic_n that_o be_v 39_o incline_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o angel_n be_v from_o thence_o 5._o call_v angelici_fw-la as_o isidorus_n note_v because_o they_o do_v worship_n angel_n to_o transcribe_v here_o at_o large_a the_o several_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o condemn_v this_o worship_v of_o angel_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n whatsoever_o will_v be_v a_o endless_a work_n gregory_n nyssen_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o four_o or_o fifth_z book_z rather_o against_o eunomius_n lay_v this_o down_o for_o a_o undoubted_a principle_n 144._o that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v their_o be_v by_o creation_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v by_o man_n the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v by_o law_n ordain_v as_o almost_o out_o of_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o may_v learn_v moses_n the_o table_n the_o law_n the_o prophet_n afterward_o the_o gospel_n the_o determination_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n do_v equal_o forbid_v the_o look_v unto_o the_o creature_n then_o have_v show_v that_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o a_o multitude_n of_o god_n among_o the_o heathen_a 146._o lest_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v happen_v unto_o we_o say_v he_o who_o be_v instruct_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o look_v unto_o the_o true_a deity_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o understand_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v create_v be_v a_o different_a thing_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o that_o we_o be_v to_o worship_n and_o adore_v that_o nature_n only_o which_o be_v uncreated_a who_o character_n and_o mark_n be_v that_o it_o neither_o at_o any_o time_n begin_v to_o be_v nor_o ever_o shall_v cease_v to_o be_v but_o our_o romanist_n have_v long_o since_o overthrow_v this_o principle_n and_o so_o alter_v moses_n and_o the_o table_n and_o the_o law_n that_o of_o the_o 1●8_n 24._o mortal_a sin_n whereby_o they_o say_v the_o first_o commandment_n be_v break_v they_o reckon_v the_o first_o to_o be_v commit_v by_o he_o qui_fw-la colit_fw-la extra_fw-la deum_fw-la vel_fw-la sanctos_fw-la quodque_fw-la creatum_fw-la who_o worship_v any_o create_a thing_n beside_o god_n and_o the_o saint_n and_o whereas_o 1._o antonius_n in_o his_o melissa_n have_v set_v down_o the_o foresay_a sentence_n of_o nyssen_n that_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o worship_n and_o adore_v that_o nature_n only_a which_o be_v uncreated_a the_o spanish_a inquisitor_n have_v take_v order_n that_o a_o piece_n of_o his_o tongue_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o give_v commandment_n that_o 1584._o the_o word_n only_a shall_v be_v blot_v out_o of_o his_o writing_n not_o consider_v that_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a word_n upon_o which_o the_o whole_a sentence_n of_o nyssen_n main_o do_v depend_v and_o that_o nyssen_n be_v not_o the_o only_a man_n that_o have_v teach_v we_o this_o lesson_n athanasius_n before_o he_o have_v use_v the_o very_a same_o argument_n against_o the_o arrian_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v of_o a_o uncreated_a nature_n arrian_n for_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o do_v forbid_v cornelius_n when_o he_o will_v have_v worship_v he_o say_v because_o i_o myself_o also_o be_o a_o man_n act._n 10.26_o the_o angel_n also_o do_v forbid_v john_n when_o he_o will_v have_v worship_v he_o in_o the_o revelation_n say_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n the_o prophet_n and_o of_o they_o which_o keep_v the_o say_n of_o this_o book_n worship_n god_n revel_n 22.9_o wherefore_o it_o appertain_v to_o god_n only_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o this_o do_v the_o angel_n themselves_o know_v well_o that_o although_o they_o do_v surpass_v other_o in_o glory_n yet_o they_o be_v all_o but_o creature_n and_o be_v in_o the_o number_n not_o of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v but_o of_o they_o that_o adore_v the_o lord_n so_o we_o have_v hear_v s._n ambrose_n 414._o before_o reprehend_v those_o that_o do_v adore_v their_o fellow_n servant_n and_o epiphanius_n refute_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o collyridian_n conclude_v that_o 448._o neither_o elias_n nor_o john_n nor_o thecla_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v for_o that_o ancient_a error_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o prevail_v over_o we_o to_o forsake_v the_o live_a god_n and_o to_o worship_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o for_o they_o serve_v and_o worship_v the_o creature_n above_o the_o creator_n and_o become_v fool_n for_o if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o angel_n to_o be_v worship_v how_o much_o more_o will_v he_o not_o have_v she_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o anna_n 450._o let_v mary_n then_o be_v have_v in_o honour_n but_o let_v the_o lord_n be_v worship_v last_o s._n augustin_n to_o omit_v all_o other_o in_o the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v of_o true_a religion_n deliver_v this_o for_o one_o of_o the_o main_a ground_n thereof_o that_o 55._o the_o worship_v of_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a shall_v be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n because_o say_v he_o if_o they_o do_v live_v pious_o they_o be_v not_o hold_v to_o be_v such_o as_o will_v seek_v that_o kind_n of_o honour_n but_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o we_o by_o who_o enlighten_v they_o do_v rejoice_v that_o we_o be_v make_v partner_n of_o their_o merit_n they_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v therefore_o for_o imitation_n not_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o religion_n the_o same_o do_v he_o also_o there_o say_v of_o angel_n that_o ibid._n we_o do_v honour_n they_o with_o love_n not_o with_o service_n neither_o do_v we_o build_v temple_n unto_o they_o for_o it_o be_v not_o their_o desire_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o honour_v by_o we_o because_o they_o know_v that_o we_o ourselves_o if_o we_o be_v good_a be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o high_a god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v right_o write_v that_o a_o man_n be_v forbid_v by_o a_o angel_n that_o he_o shall_v nor_o worship_v he_o but_o god_n alone_o under_o who_o he_o be_v his_o fellow_n servant_n revel_v 22.9_o but_o what_o say_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n now_o think_v you_o unto_o these_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n 11._o i_o say_v say_v he_o not_o know_v indeed_o what_o he_o say_v nor_o whereof_o he_o affirm_v that_o they_o do_v speak_v against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o of_o wicked_a man_n do_v make_v true_a god_n and_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o they_o wherein_o you_o may_v discern_v the_o just_a hand_n of_o god_n confound_v the_o man_n wit_n that_o will_v thus_o abuse_v his_o learning_n to_o the_o uphold_v of_o idolatry_n for_o have_v he_o be_v here_o his_o own_o man_n and_o not_o be_v strange_o overtake_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o slumber_n he_o can_v no_o possible_o have_v fail_v so_o foul_o as_o to_o reckon_v the_o angel_n &_o the_o saint_n &_o the_o very_a mother_n of_o god_n herself_o of_o who_o these_o father_n do_v express_o speak_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o wicked_a person_n who_o the_o gentile_n do_v
4._o i_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v say_v origen_n that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o work_n which_o may_v require_v the_o reward_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o debt_n see_v this_o very_a thing_n itself_o that_o we_o can_v do_v or_o think_v or_o speak_v any_o thing_n we_o do_v it_o by_o his_o gift_n and_o largesse_n 20._o wage_n indeed_o say_v saint_n hilary_n there_o be_v none_o of_o gift_n because_o it_o be_v due_a by_o work_n but_o god_n have_v give_v the_o same_o free_a to_o all_o man_n by_o the_o justification_n of_o faith_n virgin_n whence_o shall_v i_o have_v so_o great_a merit_n see_v mercy_n be_v my_o crown_n say_v s._n ambrose_n and_o again_o 11._o which_o of_o we_o can_v subsist_v without_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n what_o can_v we_o do_v worthy_a of_o the_o heavenly_a reward_n which_o of_o we_o do_v so_o rise_v up_o in_o this_o body_n that_o he_o do_v elevate_v his_o mind_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o may_v continual_o adhere_v unto_o christ_n by_o what_o merit_n of_o man_n be_v it_o grant_v that_o this_o corruptible_a flesh_n shall_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o immortality_n by_o what_o labour_n or_o by_o what_o endure_v of_o injury_n can_v we_o abate_v our_o sin_n the_o suffering_n of_o this_o time_n be_v unworthy_a for_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v to_o come_v therefore_o the_o form_n of_o heavenly_a decree_n do_v proceed_v with_o man_n not_o according_a to_o our_o merit_n but_o according_a to_o god_n mercy_n s._n basil_n expound_v those_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n behold_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o upon_o they_o that_o hope_v in_o his_o mercy_n psalm_n 33.18_o say_v that_o he_o do_v hope_n in_o his_o mercy_n ●2_n who_o not_o trust_v in_o his_o own_o good_a deed_n nor_o look_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n have_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o salvation_n only_o in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o explication_n of_o those_o other_o word_n psalm_n 116.7_o return_v unto_o thy_o rest_n o_o my_o soul_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v deal_v bountiful_o with_o thou_o 93._o everlasting_a rest_n say_v he_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o that_o strive_v lawful_o in_o this_o life_n not_o to_o be_v render_v according_a to_o the_o debt_n of_o work_n but_o exhibit_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o bountiful_a god_n to_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o 64._o if_o we_o consider_v our_o own_o merit_n we_o must_v despair_v say_v s._n hierome_n and_o 13._o when_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n or_o death_n shall_v come_v all_o hand_n will_v fail_v because_o no_o work_n shall_v be_v find_v worthy_a of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n macarius_n the_o egyptian_a eremite_n in_o his_o 15._o homily_n write_v thus_o 15._o touch_v the_o gift_n which_o christian_n shall_v inherit_v this_o a_o man_n may_v right_o say_v that_o if_o any_o one_o from_o the_o time_n wherein_o adam_n be_v create_v unto_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o world_n do_v fight_v against_o satan_n and_o undergo_v affliction_n he_o shall_v do_v no_o great_a matter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o he_o shall_v inherit_v for_o he_o shall_v reign_v together_o with_o christ_n world_n without_o end_n his_o 37._o homily_n be_v in_o the_o paris_n edition_n of_o the_o work_n of_o marci_n marcus_n the_o eremite_n set_v out_o as_o the_o prooeme_n of_o his_o book_n of_o paradise_n and_o the_o spiritual_a law_n there_o macarius_n exhort_v we_o that_o 37._o believe_v in_o almighty_a god_n we_o shall_v with_o a_o simple_a heart_n and_o void_a of_o scrupulositie_n come_v unto_o he_o who_o bestow_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o spirit_n according_a to_o faith_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n where_o joannes_n picus_n the_o popish_a interpreter_n of_o marcus_n give_v we_o warning_n in_o his_o margin_n that_o this_o clause_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o lively_a faith_n but_o conceal_v his_o own_o faithlesness_n in_o corrupt_v of_o the_o text_n by_o turn_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v by_o his_o latin_a translation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o colon_n bibliothecâ_fw-la patrum_fw-la as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o non_fw-la ex_fw-la proportione_fw-la operum_fw-la naturae_fw-la there_o be_v a_o treatise_n extant_a of_o the_o say_v marcus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d touch_v those_o who_o think_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o their_o work_n where_o he_o make_v two_o sort_n of_o man_n ingolstad_n that_o miss_v both_o of_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o one_o such_o as_o do_v not_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o yet_o imagine_v that_o they_o believe_v aright_o the_o other_o such_o as_o keep_v the_o commandment_n do_v expect_v the_o kingdom_n as_o a_o wage_n due_a ●nto_n they_o for_o 2._o the_o lord_n say_v he_o willing_a to_o show_v that_o all_o the_o commandment_n be_v of_o duty_n to_o be_v perform_v and_o that_o the_o adoption_n of_o child_n be_v free_o give_v to_o man_n by_o his_o blood_n say_v when_o you_o have_v do_v a●l_a thing_n that_o be_v command_v you_o then_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n and_o we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o the_o hire_n of_o work_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n prepare_v for_o his_o faithful_a servant_n this_o sentence_n be_v repeat_v in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o word_n by_o 79._o hesychius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o sentence_n write_v to_o thalassius_n the_o like_a say_n also_o have_v s._n chrysostome_n 2._o no_o man_n show_v such_o a_o conversation_n of_o life_n that_o he_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o this_o be_v whole_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o say_v when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n for_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v we_o have_v do_v 157._o although_o we_o do_v die_v a_o thousand_o death_n although_o we_o do_v perform_v all_o virtuous_a action_n yet_o shall_v we_o come_v short_a by_o far_o of_o render_v any_o thing_n worthy_a of_o those_o honour_n which_o be_v confer_v upon_o we_o by_o god_n 4._o although_o we_o shall_v do_v innumerable_a good_a deed_n it_o be_v of_o god_n pity_n and_o benignity_n that_o we_o be_v hear_v although_o we_o shall_v come_v unto_o the_o very_a top_n of_o virtue_n it_o be_v of_o mercy_n that_o we_o be_v save_v latin_n for_o although_o we_o do_v innumerable_a work_n of_o mercy_n yet_o will_v it_o be_v of_o the_o benignity_n of_o grace_n that_o for_o such_o small_a and_o mean_a matter_n shall_v be_v give_v so_o great_a a_o heaven_n and_o a_o kingdom_n and_o such_o a_o honour_n 5._o whereunto_o nothing_o we_o do_v can_v have_v equal_a correspondence_n chrysost._n let_v the_o merit_n of_o man_n be_v excellent_a let_v he_o observe_v the_o right_n of_o nature_n let_v he_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n let_v he_o fulfil_v his_o faith_n keep_v justice_n exercise_n virtue_n condemn_v vice_n repel_v sin_n show_v himself_o a_o example_n for_o other_o to_o imitate_v if_o he_o have_v perform_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v little_a whatsoever_o he_o have_v do_v be_v small_a for_o all_o merit_n be_v short_a number_n god_n benefit_n if_o thou_o can_v and_o then_o consider_v what_o thou_o do_v merit_v weigh_v thy_o own_o deed_n with_o the_o heavenly_a benefit_n ponder_v thy_o own_o act_n with_o the_o divine_a gift_n and_o thou_o will_v not_o judge_v thyself_o worthy_a of_o that_o which_o thou_o be_v if_o thou_o understand_v what_o thou_o do_v merit_v whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v the_o exhortation_n make_v by_o s._n antony_n to_o his_o monk_n in_o egypt_n 25._o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v most_o short_a be_v measure_v with_o the_o world_n to_o come_v so_o that_o all_o our_o time_n be_v even_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o every_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n be_v sell_v for_o that_o which_o it_o be_v worth_a and_o one_o give_v equal_a in_o exchange_n of_o equal_a but_o the_o promise_n of_o everlasting_a life_n be_v buy_v for_o a_o very_a little_a matter_n wherefore_o my_o son_n let_v we_o not_o wax_v weary_a nor_o think_v that_o we_o stay_v long_o or_o perform_v some_o great_a thing_n for_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v on_o we_o neither_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o world_n let_v we_o think_v that_o we_o have_v forsake_v any_o great_a matter_n for_o all_o this_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o very_a little_a thing_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o whole_a heaven_n therefore_o although_o we_o have_v be_v lord_n of_o the_o whole_a
a_o answer_n to_o a_o challenge_n make_v by_o a_o jesuit_n in_o jreland_n wherein_o the_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n in_o the_o point_v question_v be_v true_o deliver_v and_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o now_o romish_a doctrine_n plain_o discover_v by_o james_n usher_n bishop_n of_o meath_z matth_n 19.8_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o dublin_n print_v by_o the_o society_n of_o stationer_n 1624._o to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n james_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n defender_n of_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n most_o gracious_a and_o dread_a sovereign_n we_o find_v it_o record_v for_o the_o everlasting_a honour_n of_o theodosius_n the_o young_a that_o it_o be_v his_o use_n 22._o to_o reason_n with_o his_o bishop_n of_o the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v one_o of_o their_o order_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n in_o latter_a day_n that_o panopliae_fw-la whatsoever_o time_n he_o can_v spare_v from_o the_o public_a care_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n he_o do_v whole_o employ_v in_o the_o diligent_a read_n of_o god_n book_n and_o in_o confer_v thereof_o with_o worthy_a man_n of_o who_o his_o court_n be_v never_o empty_a how_o little_a inferior_a or_o how_o much_o superior_a rather_o your_o majesty_n be_v to_o either_o of_o these_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o praise_n i_o need_v not_o speak_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v even_o by_o such_o as_o differ_v from_o you_o in_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o a_o matter_n that_o have_v religion_n add_v more_o than_o ordinary_a lustre_n of_o ornament_n to_o your_o royal_a estate_n that_o you_o do_v not_o forbear_v so_o much_o as_o at_o the_o time_n of_o your_o bodily_a repast_n to_o have_v for_o the_o then_o like_o feed_v of_o your_o intellectual_a part_n your_o highness_n table_n surround_v with_o the_o attendance_n and_o conference_n of_o your_o grave_n and_o learned_a divine_n what_o inward_a joy_n my_o heart_n conceive_v as_o oft_o as_o i_o have_v have_v the_o happiness_n to_o be_v present_a at_o such_o season_n i_o forbear_v to_o utter_v only_o i_o will_v say_v with_o job_n that_o 29.11_o the_o ear_n which_o hear_v you_o bless_v you_o and_o the_o eye_n which_o see_v you_o give_v witness_n to_o you_o but_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o observe_v your_o singular_a dexterity_n in_o detect_v the_o fraud_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o untie_v the_o most_o knotty_a argument_n of_o the_o sophister_n of_o that_o side_n be_v it_o i_o confess_v that_o i_o admire_v most_o especial_o where_o occasion_n be_v offer_v you_o to_o utter_v your_o skill_n not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o but_o also_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o you_o have_v attain_v such_o a_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n as_o with_o honour_n to_o god_n i_o trust_v i_o may_v speak_v it_o &_o without_o flattery_n to_o you_o in_o a_o well_o study_v divine_a we_o will_v account_v very_o commendable_a but_o in_o such_o a_o monarch_n as_o yourself_o almost_o incredible_a and_o this_o be_v one_o cause_n most_o gracious_a sovereign_n beside_o my_o general_a duty_n and_o the_o many_o special_a obligation_n whereby_o i_o be_o otherwise_o bind_v unto_o your_o majesty_n which_o have_v embolden_v i_o to_o entreat_v your_o patience_n at_o this_o time_n in_o vouchsafe_v to_o be_v a_o spectator_n of_o this_o combat_n which_o i_o be_o now_o enter_v into_o with_o a_o jesuite_n who_o charge_v we_o to_o disallow_v many_o chief_a article_n which_o the_o saint_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v general_o hold_v to_o be_v true_a and_o undertake_v to_o make_v good_a that_o they_o of_o his_o side_n do_v not_o disagree_v from_o that_o holy_a church_n either_o in_o these_o or_o in_o any_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n now_o true_a it_o be_v if_o a_o man_n do_v only_o attend_v unto_o the_o bare_a sound_n of_o the_o word_n as_o in_o the_o question_n of_o merit_n for_o example_n or_o to_o the_o thing_n in_o general_a without_o descend_v into_o the_o particular_a consideration_n of_o the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o as_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a he_o may_v easy_o be_v induce_v to_o believe_v that_o in_o divers_a of_o these_o controversy_n the_o father_n speak_v clear_o for_o they_o and_o against_o we_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o one_o thing_n that_o have_v win_v more_o credit_n to_o that_o religion_n or_o more_o advance_v it_o in_o the_o conscience_n of_o simple_a man_n than_o the_o conformity_n that_o it_o retain_v in_o some_o word_n and_o outward_a observance_n with_o the_o ancient_a church_n o●_n christ._n whereas_o if_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v narrow_o look_v into_o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o they_o have_v only_o the_o shell_n without_o the_o kernel_n and_o we_o the_o kernel_n without_o the_o shell_n they_o have_v retain_v certain_a word_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o apply_v they_o to_o a_o new_a invent_a doctrine_n and_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v relinquish_v these_o word_n and_o observance_n but_o retain_v nevertheless_o the_o same_o primitive_a doctrine_n unto_o which_o by_o their_o first_o institution_n they_o have_v relation_n the_o more_o cause_n have_v i_o to_o count_v myself_o happy_a that_o be_o to_o answer_v of_o these_o matter_n before_o a_o king_n that_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v betwixt_o thing_n that_o differ_v and_o have_v knowledge_n of_o all_o these_o question_n 26.26_o before_o who_o therefore_o i_o may_v speak_v bold_o because_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v hide_v from_o he_o for_o it_o be_v not_o of_o late_a day_n that_o your_o majesty_n have_v begin_v to_o take_v these_o thing_n into_o your_o consideration_n from_o a_o child_n have_v you_o be_v train_v up_o to_o this_o warfare_n yea_o before_o you_o be_v twenty_o year_n of_o age_n the_o lord_n have_v teach_v your_o hand_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o your_o finger_n to_o make_v battle_n against_o his_o babel_n whereof_o your_o paraphrase_n upon_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n be_v a_o memorable_a monument_n leave_v to_o all_o posterity_n which_o i_o can_v never_o look_v upon_o but_o those_o verse_n of_o the_o pöet_v run_v always_o in_o my_o mind_n caesaribus_fw-la virtus_fw-la contigit_fw-la ante_fw-la diem_fw-la ovid._n jngenium_fw-la coeleste_fw-la suis_fw-la velocius_fw-la annis_fw-la surgit_fw-la &_o ignavae_fw-la fert_fw-la mala_fw-la damna_fw-la morae_fw-la how_o constant_a you_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o in_o the_o profession_n and_o maintenance_n of_o the_o truth_n your_o late_a protestation_n make_v unto_o both_o the_o house_n of_o your_o parliament_n give_v sufficient_a evidence_n so_o much_o whereof_o as_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o present_a antidote_n against_o that_o false_a and_o scandalous_a 1623._o oration_n spread_v among_o foreigner_n under_o your_o majesty_n sacred_a name_n i_o humble_o make_v bold_a to_o insert_v in_o this_o place_n as_o a_o perpetual_a testimony_n of_o your_o integrity_n in_o this_o behalf_n 1624._o what_o my_o religion_n be_v my_o book_n do_v declare_v my_o profession_n and_o my_o behaviour_n do_v show_v and_o i_o hope_v in_o god_n i_o shall_v never_o live_v to_o be_v think_v otherwise_o sure_o i_o be_o i_o shall_v never_o deserve_v it_o and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o wish_v that_o it_o may_v be_v write_v in_o marble_n and_o remain_v to_o posterity_n as_o a_o mark_n upon_o i_o when_o i_o shall_v swerve_v from_o my_o religion_n for_o he_o that_o do_v dissemble_v with_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v by_o man_n my_o lord_n i_o protest_v before_o god_n my_o heart_n have_v bleed_v when_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o increase_n of_o popery_n and_o god_n be_v my_o judge_n it_o have_v be_v so_o great_a a_o grief_n unto_o i_o that_o it_o have_v be_v like_o thorn_n in_o my_o eye_n and_o prick_v in_o my_o side_n so_o far_o have_v i_o be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v from_o turn_v any_o other_o way_n and_o my_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n you_o all_o shall_v be_v my_o confessor_n if_o i_o know_v any_o way_n better_o than_o other_o to_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n i_o will_v take_v it_o and_o he_o can_v be_v a_o honest_a man_n who_o know_v as_o i_o do_v and_o be_v persuade_v as_o i_o be_o will_v do_v otherwise_o as_o you_o have_v so_o long_o since_o begin_v and_o happy_o continue_v so_o go_v on_o most_o renown_a king_n and_o still_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n fight_v the_o lord_n battle_n courageous_o honour_v he_o evermore_o and_o advance_v his_o truth_n that_o when_o you_o have_v fight_v this_o good_a fight_n 4.7.8_o and_o finish_v your_o course_n and_o keep_v the_o faith_n you_o may_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n reserve_v in_o heaven_n
more_o unlearned_a and_o unhappy_a if_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discover_v what_o feat_n the_o devil_n wrought_v in_o that_o time_n of_o darkness_n wherein_o man_n be_v not_o so_o vigilant_a in_o mark_v his_o conveyance_n and_o such_o as_o may_v see_v somewhat_o be_v not_o so_o forward_o in_o write_v book_n of_o their_o observation_n must_v the_o infelicity_n of_o that_o age_n wherein_o there_o be_v little_a learning_n and_o less_o write_v yea_o which_o for_o want_v of_o writer_n as_o cardinal_n 1._o baronius_n acknowledge_v have_v be_v usual_o name_v the_o obscure_a age_n must_v this_o i_o say_v enforce_v i_o to_o yield_v that_o the_o devil_n bring_v in_o no_o tare_n all_o that_o while_n but_o let_v slip_v the_o opportunity_n of_o so_o dark_a a_o night_n and_o sleep_v himself_o for_o company_n there_o be_v other_o mean_v leave_v unto_o we_o whereby_o we_o may_v discern_v the_o tare_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o good_a seed_n which_o be_v sow_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n beside_o this_o observation_n of_o time_n and_o season_n which_o will_v often_o fail_v us._n ipsa_fw-la doctrina_fw-la eorum_fw-la say_v 32._o tertullian_n cum_fw-la apostolicâ_fw-la comparata_fw-la ex_fw-la diversitate_fw-la &_o contrarietate_fw-la suâ_fw-la pronuntiabit_fw-la neque_fw-la apostoti_fw-la alicujus_fw-la auctoris_fw-la esse_fw-la neque_fw-la apostolici_fw-la their_o very_a doctrine_n itself_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a by_o the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n thereof_o will_v pronounce_v that_o it_o have_v for_o author_n neither_o any_o apostle_n nor_o any_o man_n apostolical_a for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o better_a prescription_n against_o heretical_a novelty_n then_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n use_v against_o the_o pharisee_n 19.8_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o nor_o a_o better_a preservative_n against_o the_o infection_n of_o seducer_n that_o be_v creep_v in_o unaware_o then_o that_o which_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n 4._o jude_n earnest_o to_o contend_v for_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v once_o deliver_v unto_o the_o saint_n now_o to_o the_o end_n we_o 1.4_o may_v know_v the_o certainty_n of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o saint_n be_v at_o the_o first_o instruct_v god_n have_v provide_v that_o the_o memorial_n thereof_o shall_v be_v record_v in_o his_o own_o book_n that_o it_o may_v remain_v 30.8_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o he_o then_o who_o out_o of_o that_o book_n be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n now_o prevail_v swarve_v from_o that_o which_o be_v at_o first_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n do_v as_o strong_o prove_v that_o a_o change_n have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o middle_a time_n as_o if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o nominate_v the_o place_n where_o the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o any_o such_o corruption_n be_v first_o bring_v in_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n when_o a_o man_n have_v examine_v himself_o he_o be_v admit_v unto_o the_o lord_n table_n there_o to_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o cup_n as_o appear_v plain_o 1._o cor._n 11.28_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n the_o people_n be_v indeed_o permit_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o bread_n if_o bread_n they_o may_v call_v it_o but_o not_o allow_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup._n must_v all_o of_o we_o now_o shut_v our_o eye_n and_o sing_v now_o sicut_fw-la erat_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la unless_o we_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v by_o who_o and_o when_o this_o first_o institution_n be_v alter_v by_o s._n paul_n order_n who_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n do_v to_o edification_n christian_n shall_v pray_v with_o understanding_n and_o not_o in_o a_o unknown_a language_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o case_n be_v now_o so_o alter_v that_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v which_o hinder_v the_o edify_n of_o babel_n itself_o and_o scatter_v the_o builder_n thereof_o be_v account_v a_o good_a mean_n to_o further_o the_o edify_n of_o your_o babel_n and_o to_o 15_o hold_v her_o follower_n together_o be_v not_o this_o then_o a_o good_a ground_n to_o resolve_v a_o man_n judgement_n that_o thing_n be_v not_o now_o keep_v in_o that_o order_n wherein_o they_o be_v set_v at_o first_o by_o the_o apostle_n although_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o point_v unto_o the_o first_o author_n of_o the_o disorder_n and_o as_o we_o may_v thus_o discover_v innovation_n by_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o first_o and_o best_a time_n so_o may_v we_o do_v the_o like_a by_o compare_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n present_a with_o the_o middle_a time_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o i_o find_v by_o the_o constant_a and_o approve_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n man_n woman_n and_o child_n have_v free_a libertic_a to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o find_v now_o the_o contrary_a among_o the_o papist_n and_o shall_v i_o say_v for_o all_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o remove_v the_o bound_n which_o be_v set_v by_o the_o father_n because_o perhaps_o i_o can_v name_v the_o pope_n that_o venture_v to_o make_v the_o first_o enclosure_n of_o these_o commons_o of_o god_n people_n i_o hear_v s._n 115._o hier●me_n say_v judith_n &_o tobiae_n &_o macchabaeorum_n libros_fw-la legit_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la the_o church_n do_v read_v indeed_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n and_o toby_n and_o the_o macchabee_n but_o do_v not_o receive_v they_o for_o canonical_a scripture_n i_o see_v that_o at_o this_o day_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v they_o for_o such_o may_v not_o i_o then_o conclude_v that_o betwixt_o s._n hieromes_n time_n and_o we_o there_o have_v be_v a_o change_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the●_n howsoever_o i_o can_v precise_o lay_v down_o the_o time_n wherein_o she_o first_o think_v herself_o to_o be_v wise_a herein_o than_o her_o forefather_n but_o here_o our_o adversary_n close_v with_o we_o and_o lay_v down_o a_o number_n of_o point_n hold_v by_o they_o and_o deny_v by_o we_o which_o he_o undertake_v to_o make_v good_a as_o well_o by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n as_o also_o by_o good_a and_o certain_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n if_o the_o father_n authority_n will_v not_o suffice_v where_o if_o he_o will_v change_v his_o order_n and_o give_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n the_o precedency_n he_o shall_v therein_o do_v more_o right_a to_o god_n the_o author_n of_o they_o who_o well_o deserve_v to_o have_v audience_n in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o withal_o ease_n both_o himself_o and_o we_o of_o a_o needless_a labour_n in_o seek_v any_o further_a authority_n to_o compose_v our_o difference_n for_o if_o he_o can_v produce_v as_o he_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n he_o can_v good_a and_o certain_a ground_n o●t_v of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n for_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n the_o matter_n be_v at_o a_o end_n he_o that_o will_v not_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o such_o evidence_n as_o these_o may_v if_o he_o please_v travail_v further_o and_o speed_v worse_o therefore_o as_o s._n 14._o augustine_n heretofore_o provoke_v the_o donatist_n so_o provoke_v i_o he_o auferantur_fw-la chartae_fw-la humanae_fw-la sonent_fw-la voces_fw-la divinae_fw-la ede_fw-mi mihi_fw-la unam_fw-la scripturae_fw-la vocem_fw-la pro_fw-la parte_fw-la donati_n let_v humane_a write_n be_v remove_v let_v god_n voice_n sound_n bring_v i_o on●e_v voice_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o part_n of_o donatus_n produce_v but_o one_o clear_a testimony_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n for_o the_o pope_n part_n and_o it_o shall_v suffice_v allege_v what_o authority_n you_o list_v without_o scripture_n and_o it_o can_v suffice_v we_o reverence_v indeed_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o it_o be_v fit_a we_o shall_v and_o hold_v it_o our_o duty_n to_o rise_v up_o before_o the_o hoar_a head_n and_o to_o honour_v the_o person_n of_o the_o age_a 19.32_o but_o still_o with_o reservation_n of_o the_o respect_n we_o owe_v to_o their_o father_n and_o we_o that_o ancient_n of_o day_n 7.6_o the_o hair_n of_o who_o head_n be_v like_o the_o pure_a wool_n we_o may_v not_o forget_v the_o lesson_n which_o our_o great_a master_n have_v teach_v we_o 23.9_o call_v no_o man_n your_o father_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o one_o be_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o therefore_o alone_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v for_o the_o father_n of_o our_o faith_n no_o other_o father_n do_v we_o know_v upon_o who_o bare_a credit_n
yet_o be_v daily_o offer_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n contra_fw-la quem_fw-la say_v he_o satis_fw-la argumentatur_fw-la &_o rabanus_n in_o epistolâ_fw-la ad_fw-la helgimonem_fw-la egilonem_fw-la abbatem_fw-la &_o ratrannus_n quidam_fw-la libro_fw-la composito_fw-la ad_fw-la karolum_fw-la regem_fw-la dicentes_fw-la aliam_fw-la esse_fw-la against_o who_o both_o rabanus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o abbot_n egilo_n and_o one_o ratrannus_n in_o a_o book_n which_o he_o make_v to_o king_n charles_n argue_v large_o say_v that_o it_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o flesh_n whereby_o what_o rabanus_n his_o opinion_n be_v of_o this_o point_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o abbot_n egilo_n or_o egilus_fw-la &_o consequent_o what_o that_o be_v which_o the_o monk_n of_o weingart_n can_v not_o endure_v in_o his_o penitential_a i_o trust_v be_v plain_a enough_o i_o omit_v other_o corruption_n of_o antiquity_n in_o this_o same_o question_n which_o i_o have_v touch_v 198._o elsewhere_o only_o that_o of_o bertram_z i_o may_v not_o pass_v over_o wherein_o the_o dishonesty_n of_o these_o man_n in_o handle_v the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a be_v lay_v open_a even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o mouth_n thus_o the_o case_n stand_v that_o ratrannus_n who_o join_v with_o rabanus_n in_o refute_v the_o error_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n at_o the_o first_o bring_v in_o thereof_o by_o paschasius_fw-la ratbertus_n be_v he_o who_o common_o be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o bertramus_n the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v of_o this_o argument_n to_o carolus_n calvus_n the_o emperor_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v read_v by_o order_n from_o the_o roman_a inquisition_n confirm_v afterward_o by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o divine_n of_o douai_n perceive_v that_o the_o forbid_v of_o the_o book_n do_v not_o keep_v man_n from_o read_v it_o but_o give_v they_o rather_o occasion_v to_o seek_v more_o earnest_o after_o it_o think_v it_o better_a policy_n that_o bertram_n shall_v be_v permit_v to_o go_v abroad_o but_o handle_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o other_o ancient_a writer_n that_o make_v against_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v see_v therefore_o say_v 1571._o they_o we_o bear_v with_o very_a many_o error_n in_o other_o of_o the_o old_a catholic_a writer_n and_o extenuate_v they_o excuse_v they_o by_o invent_v some_o device_n oftentimes_o deny_v they_o and_o fain_o some_o commodious_a sense_n for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v object_v in_o disputation_n or_o conflict_n with_o our_o adversary_n we_o do_v not_o see_v why_o bertram_n may_v not_o deserve_v the_o same_o equity_n and_o diligent_a reviseall_a lest_o the_o heretic_n cry_v out_o that_o we_o burn_v and_o forbid_v such_o antiquity_n as_o make_v for_o they_o mark_v this_o deal_n well_o the_o world_n must_v be_v bear_v in_o hand_n that_o all_o the_o father_n make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o we_o in_o all_o our_o controversy_n when_o we_o bring_v forth_o express_v testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o contrary_a what_o must_v then_o be_v do_v a_o good_a face_n must_v be_v put_v upon_o the_o matter_n one_o device_n or_o other_o must_v be_v invent_v to_o elude_v the_o testimony_n object_v and_o still_o it_o must_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o father_n make_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n bertram_z for_o example_n write_v thus_o dom._n the_o thing_n which_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o be_v not_o the_o same_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o rose_n again_o and_o be_v make_v immortal_a now_o die_v not_o death_n no_o more_o have_v dominion_n over_o it_o be_v everlasting_a and_o now_o not_o subject_a to_o suffer_v but_o this_o which_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n be_v temporal_a not_o everlasting_a it_o be_v corruptible_a not_o free_a from_o corruption_n what_o device_n must_v they_o find_v out_o here_o they_o must_v say_v this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o accident_n or_o 7._o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v corruptible_a or_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o continue_v only_o in_o this_o present_a world_n but_o how_o will_v this_o shift_n serve_v the_o turn_n when_o as_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o the_o discourse_n tend_v to_o prove_v that_o that_o which_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o that_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o die_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o rise_v again_o from_o death_n non_fw-fr malé_fw-fr aut_fw-la inconsulté_fw-fr omittantur_fw-la igitur_fw-la omne_fw-la haec_fw-la it_o be_v not_o amiss_o therefore_o say_v our_o popish_a censurer_n nor_o unadvised_o do_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v leave_v out_o if_o this_o be_v your_o manner_n of_o deal_n with_o antiquity_n let_v all_o man_n judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o high_a time_n for_o we_o to_o listen_v unto_o the_o advice_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o not_o be_v so_o forward_o to_o commit_v the_o trial_n of_o our_o controversy_n to_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n who_o have_v have_v the_o ill_a hap_n to_o fall_v into_o such_o huckster_n handle_v yet_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o confident_a we_o be_v in_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o cause_n we_o will_v not_o now_o stand_v upon_o our_o right_n nor_o refuse_v to_o enter_v with_o you_o into_o this_o field_n but_o give_v you_o leave_v for_o this_o time_n both_o to_o be_v the_o challenger_n and_o the_o appointer_n of_o your_o own_o weapon_n let_v we_o then_o hear_v your_o challenge_n wherein_o you_o will_v so_o fain_o be_v answer_v i_o will_v fain_o know_v say_v you_o how_o can_v your_o religion_n be_v true_a which_o disallow_v of_o many_o chief_a article_n which_o the_o saint_n and_o father_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n do_v general_o hold_v to_o be_v true_a for_o they_o of_o your_o side_n that_o have_v read_v the_o father_n of_o that_o unspotted_a church_n can_v well_o testify_v and_o if_o any_o deny_v it_o it_o shall_v be_v present_o show_v that_o the_o doctor_n pastor_n and_o father_n of_o that_o church_n do_v allow_v of_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o now_o will_v i_o fain_o know_v whether_o of_o both_o have_v the_o true_a religion_n they_o that_o hold_v all_o these_o abovesaid_a point_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o they_o that_o do_v most_o vehement_o contradict_v and_o gainsay_v they_o they_o that_o do_v not_o disagree_v with_o that_o holy_a church_n in_o any_o point_n of_o religion_n or_o they_o that_o agree_v with_o it_o but_o in_o very_a few_o and_o disagree_v in_o almost_o all_o and_o the_o three_o time_n too_o for_o fail_v now_o will_v i_o willing_o see_v what_o reasonable_a answer_n may_v be_v make_v to_o this_o for_o the_o protestant_n grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o 400_o or_o 500_o year_n hold_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o christ_n yet_o do_v they_o exclaim_v against_o the_o abovesaid_a article_n which_o the_o same_o church_n do_v maintain_v and_o uphold_v as_o may_v be_v show_v by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o shall_v be_v large_o lay_v down_o if_o any_o learned_a protestant_n will_v deny_v it_o if_o albertus_n pighius_fw-la have_v now_o be_v alive_a as_o great_a a_o scholar_n as_o he_o be_v he_o may_v have_v learn_v that_o he_o never_o know_v before_o who_o do_v ever_o yet_o say_v 3._o he_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v the_o universal_a church_n that_o do_v this_o man_n say_v i_o who_o style_v all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o martyr_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o small_a matter_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o magnify_n of_o that_o church_n to_o confound_v urbem_fw-la &_o orbem_fw-la unless_o he_o mingle_v also_o heaven_n and_o earth_n together_o by_o give_v the_o title_n of_o that_o unspotted_a church_n which_o be_v the_o special_a privilege_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n here_o militant_a upon_o earth_n s._n augustine_n sure_o will_v not_o have_v himself_o otherwise_o understand_v whensoever_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o unspotted_a church_n and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v all_o mistake_n he_o thus_o expound_v himself_o in_o his_o retractation_n 18._o wheresoever_o in_o these_o book_n i_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v take_v as_o if_o she_o be_v so_o now_o but_o that_o she_o be_v prepare_v to_o be_v so_o when_o she_o shall_v appear_v glorious_a for_o now_o by_o reason_n of_o certain_a ignorances_n and_o infirmity_n of_o her_o member_n the_o whole_a church_n have_v cause_n to_o say_v every_o day_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n now_o as_o long_o as_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o ignorances_n and_o infirmity_n it_o can_v
lead_v by_o who_o be_v the_o penner_n of_o the_o canocicall_a scripture_n but_o this_o be_v your_o old_a wont_a to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a with_o set_v forth_o the_o sanctity_n and_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o father_n much_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o your_o grandfather_n pelagius_n who_o in_o the_o three_o of_o his_o book_n which_o he_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o freewill_n think_v he_o have_v strike_v all_o dead_a by_o his_o commend_v of_o s._n ambrose_n bless_a ambrose_n the_o bishop_n say_v reprehendere_fw-la he_o in_o who_o book_n the_o roman_a faith_n do_v especial_o appear_v who_o like_o a_o beautiful_a flower_n shine_v among_o the_o latin_a writer_n who_o faith_n and_o most_o pure_a understanding_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o enemy_n himself_o dare_v not_o reprehend_v unto_o who_o s._n augustine_n 43._o behold_v with_o what_o and_o how_o great_a praise_n he_o extoll_v a_o man_n though_o holy_a and_o learned_a yet_o not_o to_o be_v compare_v unto_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o advance_v the_o learning_n and_o holiness_n of_o these_o worthy_a man_n as_o much_o as_o you_o list_v other_o answer_v you_o be_v not_o like_a to_o have_v from_o we_o then_o that_o which_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n make_v unto_o s._n hierome_n 19_o this_o reverence_n and_o honour_n have_v i_o learned_a to_o give_v to_o those_o book_n of_o scripture_n only_o which_o now_o be_v call_v canonical_a that_o i_o most_o firm_o believe_v none_o of_o their_o author_n can_v any_o whit_n err_v in_o writing_n but_o other_o i_o so_o read_v that_o with_o how_o great_a sanctity_n and_o learning_n soever_o they_o do_v excel_v i_o therefore_o think_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a because_o they_o so_o think_v it_o but_o because_o they_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v i_o either_o by_o those_o canonical_a author_n or_o by_o some_o probable_a reason_n that_o it_o do_v not_o swarve_v from_o truth_n yet_o even_o to_o this_o field_n also_o do_v our_o challenger_n provoke_v we_o and_o if_o the_o father_n authority_n will_v not_o suffice_v they_o offer_v to_o produce_v good_a and_o certain_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n for_o confirmation_n of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o they_o have_v mention_v yea_o further_o they_o challenge_v any_o protestant_n to_o allege_v any_o one_o text_n out_o of_o the_o say_a scripture_n which_o condemn_v any_o of_o the_o above_o write_v point_n at_o which_o boldness_n of_o they_o we_o shall_v much_o wonder_n but_o that_o we_o consider_v that_o bankrupt_n common_o do_v then_o most_o brag_a of_o their_o ability_n when_o their_o estate_n be_v at_o the_o low_a perhaps_o also_o that_o ignorance_n may_v be_v it_o that_o do_v beget_v in_o they_o this_o boldness_n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v please_v to_o take_v the_o advice_n of_o their_o learned_a counsel_n their_o canonist_n will_v have_v tell_v they_o touch_v confession_n which_o be_v one_o of_o their_o point_n that_o poenitentia_fw-la it_o be_v better_a to_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n then_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n melchior_n canus_n 4._o can_v have_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v no_o where_o express_v in_o scripture_n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v detain_v there_o and_o dominicus_n bannes_n 302._o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v neither_o expressé_fw-fr nor_o yet_o impressé_fw-fr &_o involuté_fw-fr that_o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o saint_n or_o that_o their_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o lesuite_n will_v more_o prevail_v with_o they_o that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v saint_n pray_v unto_o auricular_a confession_n frequent_v sacrifice_n celebrate_v both_o for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n 1607._o fr._n coster_n will_v have_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o divine_a tradition_n which_o be_v not_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n howsoever_o yet_o the_o matter_n stand_v we_o have_v no_o reason_n but_o willing_o to_o accept_v of_o their_o challenge_n and_o to_o require_v they_o to_o bring_v forth_o those_o good_a and_o certain_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n for_o confirmation_n of_o all_o the_o article_n by_o they_o propound_v as_o also_o to_o let_v they_o see_v whether_o we_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v any_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o condemn_v any_o of_o those_o point_n although_o i_o must_v confess_v it_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o make_v they_o see_v any_o thing_n which_o before_o hand_n have_v resolve_v to_o close_v their_o eye_n have_v their_o mind_n so_o preoccupy_v with_o prejudice_n that_o they_o profess_v before_o ever_o we_o begin_v they_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v any_o such_o text._n and_o why_o think_v you_o because_o forsooth_o we_o be_v neither_o more_o learned_a more_o pious_a nor_o more_o holy_a than_o the_o bless_a doctor_n and_o martyr_n of_o that_o first_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v we_o yield_v at_o the_o first_o word_n that_o all_o those_o bless_a doctor_n and_o martyr_n expound_v the_o scripture_n every_o where_o to_o our_o disadvantage_n or_o be_v so_o well_o persuade_v of_o the_o tenderness_n of_o a_o jesuit_n conscience_n that_o because_o he_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n never_o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n he_o can_v not_o therefore_o have_v the_o forehead_n to_o say_v 6.62_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o i_o have_v no_o author_n of_o this_o interpretation_n yet_o do_v i_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o approve_v it_o than_o that_o other_o of_o augustine_n though_o the_o most_o probable_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n because_o it_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o calvinist_n which_o to_o i_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n of_o probability_n or_o as_o if_o last_o a_o man_n may_v not_o dissent_v from_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n so_o much_o as_o in_o a_o exposition_n of_o a_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o he_o must_v present_o make_v himself_o more_o learned_a more_o pious_a and_o more_o holy_a than_o they_o be_v yet_o their_o great_a tostatus_n may_v have_v teach_v they_o 18._o that_o this_o argument_n hold_v not_o such_o a_o one_o know_v some_o conclusion_n that_o augustine_n do_v not_o know_v therefore_o he_o be_v wise_a than_o augustine_n because_o as_o a_o certain_a skilful_a physician_n say_v the_o man_n of_o our_o time_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o ancient_a be_v like_a unto_o a_o little_a man_n set_v upon_o a_o giant_n neck_n compare_v with_o the_o giant_n himself_o for_o as_o that_o little_a man_n place_v there_o see_v whatsoever_o the_o giant_n see_v and_o somewhat_o more_o and_o yet_o if_o he_o be_v take_v down_o from_o the_o giant_n neck_n will_v see_v little_a or_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o giant_n even_o so_o we_o be_v settle_v upon_o the_o wit_n and_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v nay_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o agreeable_a unto_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v see_v whatsoever_o they_o see_v and_o somewhat_o more_o though_o yet_o say_v he_o we_o do_v not_o profess_v so_o much_o and_o even_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n speak_v friar_n stella_n that_o though_o it_o be_v far_o from_o he_o to_o condemn_v the_o common_a exposition_n give_v by_o the_o ancient_a holy_a doctor_n 10._o yet_o he_o know_v full_a well_o that_o pygmeis_n be_v put_v upon_o giant_n shoulder_n do_v see_v further_o than_o the_o giant_n themselves_o salmeron_n add_v ●1_n that_o by_o the_o increase_n of_o time_n divine_a mystery_n have_v be_v make_v know_v which_o before_o be_v hide_v from_o many_o so_o that_o to_o know_v they_o now_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o time_n not_o that_o we_o be_v better_a than_o our_o father_n be_v bishop_n fisher_n 18._o that_o it_o can_v be_v obscure_a unto_o any_o that_o many_o thing_n as_o well_o in_o the_o gospel_n as_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v now_o more_o exquisite_o discuss_v by_o latter_a wit_n and_o more_o clear_o understand_v than_o they_o have_v be_v heretofore_o either_o by_o reason_n that_o the_o ice_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o break_v unto_o the_o ancient_a neither_o do_v their_o age_n suffice_v to_o weigh_v exact_o that_o whole_a sea_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o because_o in_o this_o most_o large_a field_n of_o the_o scripture_n even_o after_o the_o most_o diligent_a reaper_n some_o ear_n will_v remain_v to_o be_v gather_v as_o yet_o untouched_a hereupon_o cardinal_n caietan_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o
his_o commentary_n upon_o moses_n advise_v his_o reader_n 1._o not_o to_o loathe_v the_o new_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o that_o it_o dissent_v from_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o to_o search_v more_o exact_o the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o he_o find_v it_o agree_v to_o praise_n god_n that_o have_v not_o tie_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o leave_v comparison_n which_o you_o know_v be_v odious_a the_o envy_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o your_o own_o doctor_n and_o master_n you_o see_v help_v we_o to_o bear_v off_o and_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o decline_v i_o now_o come_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o particular_a point_n by_o you_o propound_v it_o shall_v indeed_o be_v your_o part_n by_o right_n to_o be_v the_o assailant_n who_o first_o do_v make_v the_o challenge_n and_o i_o who_o sustain_v the_o person_n of_o the_o defendant_n may_v here_o well_o stay_v accept_v only_o your_o challenge_n &_o expect_v your_o encounter_n yet_o do_v not_o i_o mean_v at_o this_o time_n to_o answer_v your_o bill_n of_o challenge_n as_o bill_n be_v usual_o answer_v in_o the_o chancery_n with_o save_v all_o advantage_n to_o the_o defendant_n i_o be_o content_a in_o this_o also_o to_o abridge_v myself_o of_o the_o liberty_n w_o ch_n i_o may_v lawful_o take_v &_o make_v a_o further_a demonstration_n of_o my_o forwardness_n in_o undertake_v the_o maintenance_n of_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n by_o give_v the_o first_o onset_n myself_o of_o tradition_n to_o begin_v therefore_o with_o tradition_n which_o be_v your_o forlorn_a hope_n that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o be_v to_o set_v upon_o this_o must_v i_o needs_o tell_v you_o before_o we_o begin_v that_o you_o much_o mistake_v the_o matter_n if_o you_o think_v that_o tradition_n of_o all_o sort_n promiscuous_o be_v strike_v at_o by_o our_o religion_n we_o willing_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o by_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n be_v both_o by_o themselves_o and_o other_o of_o their_o fellowlabourer_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o that_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o preserve_v those_o sacred_a write_n commit_v to_o her_o trust_n but_o also_o to_o deliver_v unto_o her_o child_n viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n contain_v therein_o tradition_n therefore_o of_o this_o nature_n come_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o controversy_n the_o question_n be_v betwixt_o we_o de_fw-fr ipsâ_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la traditâ_fw-la not_o the_o tradendi_fw-la modo_fw-la touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v not_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o deliver_v it_o again_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o here_o we_o speak_v of_o doctrine_n deliver_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o point_n of_o religion_n reveal_v unto_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o the_o perpetual_a information_n of_o god_n people_n not_o of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o other_o ordinance_n which_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o of_o divine_a but_o of_o positive_a and_o humane_a right_n tradition_n therefore_o of_o this_o kind_n likewise_o be_v not_o proper_o bring_v within_o the_o circuit_n of_o this_o question_n but_o that_o tradition_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v obtrude_v unto_o we_o for_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o admit_v for_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n or_o that_o any_o tradition_n shall_v be_v accept_v for_o parcel_n of_o god_n word_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v either_o express_o therein_o contain_v or_o by_o sound_a inference_n may_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o i_o think_v we_o have_v reason_n to_o gainsay_v as_o long_o as_o for_o the_o first_o we_o have_v this_o direct_a sentence_n from_o god_n himself_o matth._n 15._o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n and_o for_o the_o second_o the_o express_a warrant_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o testify_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n which_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v if_o they_o do_v not_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o also_o that_o by_o they_o the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v 6.11_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n unto_o who_o it_o appertain_v 20.27_o to_o declare_v all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o contain_v all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n which_o be_v fit_a for_o he_o to_o learn_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o teach_v that_o shall_v not_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n now_o whether_o herein_o we_o disagree_v from_o the_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o father_n we_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o their_o own_o say_n for_o ritual_a tradition_n unwritten_a and_o for_o doctrinal_a tradition_n write_v indeed_o but_o preserve_v also_o by_o the_o continual_a preach_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n successive_o we_o find_v no_o man_n a_o more_o earnest_a advocate_n than_o tertullian_n yet_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o hermogenes_n the_o heretic_n in_o a_o question_n concern_v the_o faith_n whether_o all_o thing_n at_o the_o beginning_n be_v make_v of_o nothing_o press_v he_o in_o this_o manner_n with_o the_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiué_fw-fr for_o avoid_v whereof_o the_o papist_n be_v drive_v to_o fly_v for_o succour_n to_o their_o unwritten_a verity_n 22._o whether_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o any_o subject_a matter_n i_o have_v as_o yet_o read_v no_o where_o let_v those_o of_o hermogenes_n his_o shop_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v they_o fear_v that_o woe_n which_o be_v allot_v to_o such_o as_o add_v or_o take_v away_o in_o the_o two_o testament_n say_v origen_n 5._o every_o word_n that_o appertain_v to_o god_n may_v be_v require_v and_o discuss_v and_o all_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n out_o of_o they_o may_v be_v understand_v but_o if_o any_o thing_n do_v remain_v which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o determine_v no_o other_o three_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o to_o authorise_v any_o knowledge_n but_o that_o which_o remain_v we_o must_v commit_v to_o the_o fire_n that_o be_v we_o must_v reserve_v it_o to_o god_n for_o in_o this_o present_a world_n god_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o know_v all_o thing_n hippolytus_n the_o martyr_n in_o his_o homily_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o noëtus_n colon._n there_o be_v one_o god_n who_o we_o do_v not_o otherwise_o acknowledge_v brethren_n but_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o as_o he_o that_o will_v profess_v the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n can_v otherwise_o attain_v hereunto_o unless_o he_o read_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o philosopher_n so_o whosoever_o of_o we_o will_v exercise_v piety_n towards_o god_n can_v learn_v this_o elsewhere_o but_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whatsoever_o therefore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v preach_v that_o let_v we_o know_v and_o whatsoever_o they_o teach_v that_o let_v we_o understand_v athanasius_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o gentile_n towards_o the_o beginning_n athanas._n the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n be_v of_o themselves_o sufficient_a to_o the_o discovery_n of_o truth_n s._n ambrose_n 23._o the_o thing_n which_o we_o find_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n how_o can_v we_o use_v they_o and_o again_o 11._o i_o read_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o i_o read_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o second_o they_o who_o say_v he_o be_v the_o second_o let_v they_o show_v it_o by_o read_v it_o be_v well_o trinit_fw-la say_v s._n hilary_n that_o thou_o be_v content_a with_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v and_o in_o another_o place_n aug._n he_o commend_v constantius_n the_o emperor_n for_o desire_v the_o faith_n to_o be_v order_v only_o according_a to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v s._n basil_n trinitat_fw-la believe_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v seek_v not_o fide_fw-la it_o be_v a_o manifest_a fall_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o a_o argument_n of_o arrogancy_n either_o to_o reject_v any_o point_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v or_o to_o bring_v in_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v he_o teach_v further_a 26._o that_o every_o word_n and_o action_n ought_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o
good_a and_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o evil_a and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o faithful_a man_n to_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 22._o and_o not_o to_o dare_v either_o to_o reject_v or_o to_o add_v any_o thing_n thereunto_o for_o if_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v and_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o whatsoever_o be_v without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v sin_n thus_o far_o s._n basil._n in_o like_a manner_n gregory_n nyssene_n s._n basils_n brother_n lay_v this_o for_o a_o ground_n 639._o which_o no_o man_n shall_v contradict_v that_o in_o that_o only_o the_o truth_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v wherein_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o scripture_n testimony_n be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o according_o in_o another_o book_n attribute_v also_o unto_o he_o we_o find_v this_o conclusion_n make_v 8._o forasmuch_o as_o this_o be_v uphold_v with_o no_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o false_a we_o will_v reject_v it_o thus_o also_o s._n hierome_n dispute_v against_o helvidius·_n helvid_n as_o we_o deny_v not_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v so_o we_o refuse_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v that_o god_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n we_o believe_v because_o we_o read_v it_o that_o mary_n do_v marry_v after_o she_o be_v deliver_v we_o believe_v not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o in_o those_o thing_n 9_o say_v s._n augustine_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o plain_o in_o the_o scripture_n all_o those_o thing_n be_v find_v which_o appertain_v to_o faith_n and_o direction_n of_o life_n and_o again_o 11._o whatsoever_o you_o hear_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v that_o savour_n well_o unto_o you_o whatsoever_o be_v without_o they_o refuse_v lest_o you_o wander_v in_o a_o cloud_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 42._o all_o those_o thing_n which_o in_o time_n past_o our_o ancestor_n have_v mention_v to_o be_v do_v towards_o mankind_n and_o have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o all_o those_o thing_n also_o which_o we_o see_v and_o do_v deliver_v unto_o our_o posterity_n so_o far_o as_o they_o appertain_v to_o the_o seek_v and_o maintain_v of_o true_a religion_n the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o pass_v in_o silence_n the_o holy_a scripture_n julian._n say_v s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o which_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o it_o wise_a and_o most_o approve_a and_o furnish_v with_o most_o sufficient_a understanding_n and_o again_o 2._o that_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o say_v by_o what_o mean_n shall_v we_o receive_v and_o account_v it_o among_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v true_a last_o in_o the_o write_n of_o theodoret_n we_o meet_v with_o these_o kind_n of_o speech_n 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_a be_o i_o persuade_v 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o not_o so_o bold_a as_o to_o affirm_v any_o thing_n which_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n pass_v in_o silence_n inquirere_fw-la it_o be_v a_o idle_a and_o a_o senseless_a thing_n to_o seek_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v pass_v in_o silence_n 45._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v pass_v in_o silence_n but_o rest_n in_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o verdict_n of_o these_o twelve_o man_n you_o may_v judge_v what_o opinion_n be_v hold_v in_o those_o ancient_a time_n of_o such_o tradition_n as_o do_v cross_v either_o the_o verity_n or_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o tradition_n we_o set_v ourselves_o against_o if_o now_o it_o be_v demand_v in_o what_o pope_n day_n the_o contrary_a doctrine_n be_v bring_v in_o among_o christian_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o s._n peter_n be_v ever_o pope_n in_o his_o day_n it_o be_v that_o some_o seducer_n first_o labour_v to_o bring_v in_o will-worship_n into_o the_o church_n against_o who_o s._n paul_n oppose_v himself_o coloss._n 2._o count_v it_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o condemn_v all_o such_o invention_n that_o they_o be_v the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n short_o after_o they_o start_v up_o other_o heretic_n who_o teach_v that_o 2._o the_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o those_o to_o who_o tradition_n be_v unknowen_a forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v not_o deliver_v by_o writing_n but_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n for_o which_o cause_n s._n paul_n also_o shall_v say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a the_o very_a same_o text_n do_v the_o 8._o jesuit_n allege_v to_o prove_v the_o dignity_n of_o many_o mystery_n to_o be_v such_o that_o they_o require_v silence_n and_o that_o it_o be_v unmeet_a they_o shall_v be_v open_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v read_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o can_v only_o be_v learn_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n wherein_o they_o consider_v not_o how_o they_o make_v so_o near_o a_o approach_n unto_o the_o confine_n of_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n that_o they_o may_v well_o shake_v hand_n together_o for_o howsoever_o some_o of_o they_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o sup_n say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o make_v light_a account_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n either_o by_o writing_n or_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n yet_o all_o of_o they_o break_v not_o forth_o into_o that_o open_a impiety_n the_o same_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n wrought_v in_o some_o of_o antichrists_n forerunner_n then_o which_o be_v discover_v in_o his_o minister_n now_o 25._o they_o confess_v indeed_o as_o witness_v tertullian_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o and_o differ_v not_o among_o themselves_o in_o their_o preach_n but_o they_o say_v they_o reveal_v not_o all_o thing_n unto_o all_o man_n some_o thing_n they_o deliver_v open_o and_o to_o all_o some_o thing_n secret_o and_o to_o a_o few_o because_o that_o paul_n use_v this_o speech_n unto_o timothy_n o_o timothy_n keep_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thy_o trust_n and_o again_o that_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o keep_v which_o very_a text_n the_o 5._o jesuit_n likewise_o bring_v in_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v some_o tradition_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n hierome_n also_o this_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v the_o say_n of_o heretic_n 19_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o we_o but_o 1._o those_o thing_n say_v that_o father_n which_o they_o of_o themselves_o find_v out_o and_o fain_o to_o have_v receive_v as_o it_o be_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n do_v smite_v s._n 799._o chrysostome_n in_o like_a manner_n give_v this_o for_o a_o mark_n of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a thief_n that_o they_o come_v not_o in_o by_o the_o door_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o ibid._n like_v unto_o a_o sure_a door_n do_v bar_v a_o entrance_n unto_o heretic_n safeguard_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v and_o not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v deceive_v whereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o ibid._n who_o so_o use_v not_o the_o scripture_n but_o come_v in_o otherwise_o that_o be_v betake_v himself_o to_o another_o and_o a_o unlawful_a way_n he_o be_v a_o thief_n how_o this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n wrought_v when_o antichrist_n come_v unto_o his_o full_a growth_n and_o what_o experiment_n his_o follower_n give_v of_o their_o thievish_a entry_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la thought_n by_o some_o to_o be_v waltram_n bishop_n of_o naumburg_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o 233._o monk_n that_o for_o the_o uphold_v of_o pope_n hildebrands_n faction_n bring_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n into_o the_o church_n note_v this_o special_o of_o they_o that_o despise_v the_o tradition_n of_o god_n they_o desire_v other_o doctrine_n and_o bring_v in_o mastery_n of_o humane_a institution_n against_o who_o he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o own_o s._n benedict_n the_o father_n of_o the_o monk_n in_o the_o west_n write_v thus_o regulâ_fw-la the_o abbot_n ought_v to_o teach_v or_o ordain_v or_o command_v nothing_o which_o be_v without_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o his_o commandment_n or_o instruction_n shall_v be_v spread_v as_o the_o leaven_n of_o divine_a righteousness_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n whereunto_o also_o he_o may_v have_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o two_o famous_a father_n
in_o his_o epistle_n to_o bonifacius_n 23._o if_o sacrament_n do_v not_o some_o manner_n of_o way_n resemble_v the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v sacrament_n at_o all_o and_o for_o this_o resemblance_n they_o do_v of_o oftentimes_o also_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o a_o certain_a manner_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n be_v faith_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n he_o understand_v baptism_n of_o which_o he_o afterward_o allege_v that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 6.4_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o christ_n by_o baptism_n into_o death_n and_o then_o add_v ibid._n he_o say_v not_o we_o signify_v his_o burial_n but_o he_o plain_o say_v we_o be_v bury_v therefore_o the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n he_o will_v not_o otherwise_o call_v but_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o in_o his_o question_n upon_o leviticus_n 57_o the_o thing_n that_o signify_v say_v he_o use_v to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o that_o thing_n which_o it_o signify_v as_o it_o be_v write_v the_o seven_o ear_n of_o corn_n be_v seven_o year_n for_o he_o say_v not_o they_o signify_v seven_o year_n and_o the_o seven_o cow_n be_v seven_o year_n and_o many_o such_o like_a hence_o be_v that_o say_n the_o rock_n be_v christ._n for_o he_o say_v not_o the_o rock_n do_v signify_v christ_n but_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v that_o very_a thing_n which_o doubtless_o by_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o but_o by_o signification_n so_o also_o the_o blood_n because_o for_o a_o certain_a vital_a corpulency_n which_o it_o have_v it_o signify_v the_o soul_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o sacrament_n it_o be_v call_v the_o soul_n our_o argument_n therefore_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n stand_v thus_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n call_v bread_n his_o body_n and_o wine_n his_o blood_n then_o must_v it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v honour_v with_o those_o name_n can_v be_v real_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n but_o figurative_o and_o sacramental_o but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o latter_a the_o first_o proposition_n have_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o undoubted_a principle_n of_o right_a reason_n and_o the_o clear_a confession_n of_o the_o adverse_a part_n the_o second_o by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o evangelist_n by_o the_o exposition_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o by_o the_o receive_a ground_n of_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o the_o conclusion_n therefore_o rest_v firm_a and_o so_o we_o have_v make_v it_o clear_a that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n do_v not_o only_o not_o uphold_v but_o direct_o also_o overthow_v the_o whole_a frame_n of_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v touch_v the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n if_o i_o shall_v now_o lay_v down_o here_o all_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n which_o teach_v that_o that_o which_o christ_n call_v his_o body_n be_v bread_n in_o substance_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o signification_n and_o sacramental_a relation_n i_o shall_v never_o make_v a_o end_n justin_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n to_o antoninus_n the_o emperor_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n even_o that_o 2._o sanctify_a food_n wherewith_o our_o blood_n and_o flesh_n by_o conversion_n be_v nourish_v be_v that_o w_z ch_z we_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n incarnate_a irenaeus_n in_o his_o 4_o the_o book_n against_o heresy_n say_v that_o our_o lord_n 57_o take_v bread_n of_o that_o condition_n which_o be_v usual_a among_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v his_o body_n &_o 32._o the_o cup_n likewise_o contain_v that_o creature_n which_o be_v usual_a among_o we_o his_o blood_n and_o in_o his_o five_o book_n he_o add_v 1596._o that_o cup_n which_o be_v a_o creature_n he_o confirm_v to_o be_v his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v whereby_o he_o increase_v our_o blood_n and_o that_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o creature_n to_o be_v his_o body_n whereby_o he_o increase_v our_o body_n therefore_o when_o the_o mix_a cup_n and_o the_o break_a bread_n do_v receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n whereby_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n be_v increase_v and_o do_v consist_v our_o lord_n say_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n 2._o do_v bless_v wine_n when_o he_o say_v take_v drink_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o vine_n tertullian_n 40._o christ_n take_v bread_n and_o distribute_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n make_v it_o his_o body_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n origen_n 15._o that_o meat_n which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n as_o touch_v the_o material_a part_n thereof_o go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v void_v into_o the_o draught_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o prayer_n which_o be_v add_v according_a to_o the_o portion_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v make_v profitable_a enlighten_v the_o mind_n and_o make_v it_o to_o behold_v that_o which_o be_v profitable_a neither_o be_v it_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o word_n speak_v over_o it_o which_o profit_v he_o that_o do_v not_o unworthy_o eat_v thereof_o and_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v of_o the_o typical_a and_o symbolical_a body_n say_v origen_n in_o the_o dialogue_n against_o the_o marcionite_n collect_v for_o the_o most_o part_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o maximus_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n commodus_n and_o severus_n origen_n who_o be_v make_v the_o chief_a speaker_n therein_o be_v bring_v in_o thus_o dispute_v against_o the_o heretic_n 3_o if_o christ_n as_o these_o man_n say_v be_v without_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o what_o kind_n of_o flesh_n or_o of_o what_o body_n or_o of_o what_o kind_n of_o blood_n do_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n to_o be_v image_n of_o when_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n by_o they_o to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o s._n cyprian_n also_o note_v 6_o that_o it_o be_v wine_n even_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n which_o the_o lord_n say_v be_v his_o blood_n and_o that_o 10._o flower_n alone_o or_o water_n alone_o can_v be_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n unless_o both_o be_v unite_v and_o couple_v together_o and_o knead_v into_o the_o lump_n of_o one_o bread_n and_o again_o that_o 4._o the_o lord_n call_v bread_n his_o body_n which_o be_v make_v up_o by_o the_o unite_n of_o many_o corn_n and_o wine_n his_o blood_n which_o be_v press_v out_o of_o many_o cluster_n of_o grape_n and_o gather_v into_o one_o liquor_n which_o i_o find_v also_o word_n for_o word_n in_o a_o manner_n transcribe_v in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o gospel_n attribute_v unto_o colon._n theophilus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o those_o elder_a time_n the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v no_o otherwise_o conceive_v then_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v plain_o say_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o wine_n be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n that_o we_o strive_v for_o with_o our_o adversary_n and_o for_o which_o the_o word_n themselves_o be_v plain_a enough_o the_o substance_n whereof_o we_o find_v thus_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o gospel_n gather_v as_o some_o say_v by_o tatianus_n as_o other_o by_o ammonius_n within_o the_o second_o or_o the_o three_o age_n after_o christ._n 28._o have_v take_v the_o bread_n then_o afterward_o the_o cup_n of_o wine_n and_o testify_v it_o to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o command_v they_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v thereof_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v the_o memorial_n of_o his_o future_a passion_n and_o death_n to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n we_o will_v now_o adjoyne_v the_o testimony_n of_o those_o that_o flourish_v in_o the_o age_n follow_v the_o first_o whereof_o shall_v be_v eusebius_n who_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n 1._o deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o symbol_n of_o his_o divine_a dispensation_n command_v they_o to_o make_v the_o image_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o ibid._n appoint_v they_o to_o use_v bread_n for_o the_o symbol_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o we_o still_o ult_n celebrate_v upon_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o memory_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o symbol_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n acacius_n
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d correspondent_a type_n or_o figure_n before_o they_o be_v consecrate_v 601._o but_o after_o the_o consecration_n say_v he_o they_o be_v call_v and_o be_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n proper_o where_o the_o pope_n own_o follower_n who_o of_o late_o publish_v the_o act_n of_o the_o general_a counsel_n at_o rome_n be_v so_o far_o ashamed_a of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o blind_a bayard_n that_o they_o correct_v his_o boldness_n with_o this_o marginal_a note_n margin_n the_o holy_a gift_n be_v oftentimes_o find_v to_o be_v call_v antitype_n or_o figure_n correspondent_a after_o they_o be_v consecrate_v as_o by_o gregory_n nazianz._n in_o the_o funeral_n oration_n upon_o his_o sister_n and_o in_o his_o apology_n by_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o five_o cateche_n mystagogic_n and_o by_o other_o and_o we_o have_v already_o hear_v how_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dialogue_n against_o the_o marcionite_n and_o after_o he_o eusebius_n and_o gelasius_n express_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o image_n of_o christ_n body_n howsoever_o this_o peremptory_a clerk_n deny_v that_o ever_o any_o do_v so_o by_o all_o which_o it_o may_v easy_o appear_v that_o not_o the_o oppugner_n but_o the_o defender_n of_o image_n be_v the_o man_n who_o first_o go_v about_o herein_o to_o alter_v the_o language_n use_v by_o their_o forefather_n now_o as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o three_o this_o matter_n be_v set_v afoot_o by_o damascen_n in_o the_o east_n so_o about_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o in_o the_o papacy_n of_o gregory_n the_o four_o the_o same_o begin_v to_o be_v propound_v in_o the_o west_n by_o mean_n of_o one_o amalarius_n who_o be_v bishop_n not_o as_o he_o be_v common_o take_v to_o be_v of_o trier_n but_o of_o mets_n first_o and_o afterward_o of_o lion_n this_o man_n write_v doubtful_o of_o this_o point_n otherwhiles_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n 24._o that_o sacrament_n be_v oftentimes_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v secundùm_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la after_o a_o certain_a manner_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n otherwhiles_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o his_o 24._o belief_n that_o the_o simple_a nature_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n mix_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o reasonable_a nature_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o this_o body_n after_o the_o eat_v thereof_o be_v a_o matter_n that_o go_v beyond_o his_o little_a wit_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o 55._o when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v with_o a_o good_a intention_n it_o be_v not_o for_o i_o to_o dispute_v whether_o it_o be_v invisible_o take_v up_o into_o heaven_n or_o keep_v in_o our_o body_n until_o the_o day_n of_o our_o burial_n or_o exhale_v into_o the_o air_n or_o whether_o it_o go_v out_o of_o the_o body_n with_o the_o blood_n at_o the_o open_n of_o a_o vein_n or_o be_v send_v out_o by_o the_o mouth_n our_o lord_n say_v that_o every_o thing_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v send_v forth_o into_o the_o draught_n for_o this_o and_o another_o like_a foolery_n de_fw-fr 35._o triformi_fw-la &_o tripartito_fw-la corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la of_o the_o three_o part_n or_o kind_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v those_o ineptiae_fw-la de_fw-la tripartito_fw-la christi_fw-la corpore_fw-la that_o paschasius_fw-la in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o epistle_n intreat_v frudegardus_fw-la not_o to_o follow_v he_o be_v censure_v in_o a_o 8._o synod_n hold_v at_o carisiacum_n wherein_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n that_o ibid._n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v spiritual_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o meat_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o not_o of_o the_o belly_n be_v not_o corrupt_v but_o remain_v unto_o everlasting_a life_n these_o dotage_n of_o amalarius_n do_v not_o only_o give_v occasion_n to_o that_o question_n propound_v by_o heribaldus_n to_o rabanus_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v 16._o heretofore_o but_o also_o to_o that_o other_o of_o far_o great_a consequence_n whether_o that_o which_o be_v external_o deliver_v &_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o very_a same_o body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n &_o suffer_v upon_o the_o cr●sse_n &_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o grave_a paschasius_fw-la radbertus_n a_o deacon_n of_o those_o time_n but_o somewhat_o of_o a_o better_a and_o more_o modest_a temper_n then_o the_o greek_a deacon_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ve●ie_a same_o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n write_v his_o book_n to_o placidus_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n wherein_o say_v a_o jesuite_n radberti_fw-la he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v so_o explicate_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o càtholick_a church_n his_o own_o roman_a he_o mean_v that_o he_o open_v the_o way_n to_o those_o many_o other_o who_o write_v afterward_o of_o the_o same_o argument_n rabanus_n on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o a_o writing_n direct_v to_o abbot_n egilo_n maintain_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n as_o have_v before_o be_v note_v then_o one_o frudegardus_fw-la read_v the_o three_o book_n of_o s._n augustin_n de_fw-fr doctrinâ_fw-la christianâ_fw-la and_o find_v there_o that_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o drink_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o figurative_a manner_n of_o speech_n begin_v somewhat_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o former_o he_o have_v read_v in_o that_o foresay_a treatise_n of_o paschasius_fw-la which_o move_v paschasius_fw-la to_o write_v again_o of_o the_o same_o argument_n as_o of_o a_o question_n wherein_o he_o confess_v frudegard_n many_o be_v then_o doubtful_a but_o neither_o by_o his_o first_o nor_o by_o his_o second_o writing_n be_v he_o able_a to_o take_v these_o doubt_n out_o of_o man_n mind_n and_o therefore_o carolus_n calvus_n the_o emperor_n be_v desirous_a to_o compose_v these_o difference_n and_o to_o have_v unity_n settle_v among_o his_o subject_n require_v ratrannus_n a_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o time_n who_o live_v in_o the_o monastery_n of_o corbey_n whereof_o paschasius_fw-la be_v abbat_n to_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n touch_v these_o point_n 180._o whether_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o in_o the_o church_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o mystery_n or_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o mary_n which_o do_v suffer_v be_v dead_a and_o bury_v &_o which_o rising_z again_o and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n whereunto_o he_o return_v this_o answer_n that_o 183._o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n figurative_o that_o 105._o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n that_o which_o they_o be_v before_o consecration_n the_o same_o be_v they_o also_o afterward_o that_o 200._o they_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o the_o lord_n blood_n because_o they_o take_v the_o name_n of_o that_o thing_n of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n &_o that_o 222._o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v take_v now_o by_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n which_o suffer_v which_o be_v bury_v which_o rise_v again_o which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n all_o which_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a both_o 228._o by_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o by_o the_o say_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n whereupon_o turrian_n the_o jesuite_n be_v drive_v for_o pure_a need_n to_o shift_v off_o the_o matter_n with_o this_o silly_a interrogation_n 22._o to_o cite_v bertram_z so_o ratrannus_n be_v more_o usual_o name_v what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o heresy_n of_o calvin_n be_v not_o new_a as_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v allege_v by_o we_o for_o any_o other_o end_n then_o to_o show_v that_o this_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n be_v not_o new_a but_o have_v be_v tread_v in_o long_o since_o by_o such_o as_o in_o their_o time_n be_v account_v good_a and_o catholic_n teacher_n in_o the_o church_n that_o since_o they_o have_v be_v esteem_v otherwise_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o time_n and_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o now_o we_o be_v inquire_v of_o and_o which_o our_o adversary_n in_o a_o evil_a hour_n to_o they_o do_v so_o earnest_o press_v we_o to_o discover_v the_o emperor_n charles_n unto_o who_o this_o
answer_n of_o ratrannus_n be_v direct_v have_v then_o in_o his_o court_n a_o famous_a countryman_n of_o we_o call_v johannes_n scotus_n who_o write_v a_o book_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n and_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o the_o other_o have_v do_v this_o man_n for_o his_o extraordinary_a learning_n be_v in_o england_n where_o he_o live_v in_o great_a account_n with_o king_n alfred_n surname_v john_n the_o wise_a and_o have_v very_o late_o a_o room_n in_o the_o 15●6_n martyrologe_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o now_o he_o be_v eject_v thence_o we_o find_v he_o indeed_o censure_v by_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n and_o other_o in_o that_o time_n for_o certain_a opinion_n which_o he_o deliver_v touch_v god_n foreknowledge_n and_o predestination_n before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n man_n freewill_n and_o the_o concurrence_n thereof_o with_o grace_n in_o this_o present_a world_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o reprobate_a man_n &_o angel_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o we_o find_v not_o any_o where_o that_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v condemn_v before_o the_o day_n of_o x_o lanfranc_n who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o leaven_v that_o church_n of_o england_n afterward_o with_o this_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n till_o then_o this_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n continue_v still_o in_o debate_n and_o it_o be_v as_o free_v for_o any_o man_n to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o ratrannus_n or_o johannes_n scotus_n therein_o as_o that_o of_o paschasius_fw-la radbertus_n which_o since_o the_o time_n of_o satan_n lose_n obtain_v the_o upper_a hand_n man_n have_v often_o search_v and_o do_v yet_o often_o search_v how_o bread_n that_o be_v gather_v of_o corn_n and_o through_o fire_n heat_n bake_v may_v be_v turn_v to_o christ_n body_n or_o how_o wine_n that_o be_v press_v out_o of_o many_o grape_n be_v turn_v through_o one_o blessing_n to_o the_o lord_n blood_n say_v bibliothecâ_fw-la aelfrick_n abbot_n of_o malmesburie_n in_o his_o saxon_a homily_n write_v about_o 650._o year_n ago_o his_o resolution_n be_v not_o only_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o ratrannus_n but_o also_o in_o many_o place_n direct_o translate_v out_o of_o he_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o these_o passage_n follow_v compare_v with_o his_o latin_a lay_v down_o in_o the_o margin_n 182._o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n which_o by_o the_o priest_n ministry_n be_v hallow_v show_v one_o thing_n without_o to_o man_n sense_n and_o another_o thing_n they_o call_v within_o to_o believe_a mind_n without_o they_o be_v see_v bread_n &_o wine_n both_o in_o figure_n and_o in_o taste_n and_o they_o be_v true_o after_o their_o hallow_v christ_n body_n and_o his_o blood_n by_o spiritual_a mystery_n 188._o so_o the_o holy_a font_n water_n that_o be_v call_v the_o wellspring_n of_o life_n be_v like_a in_o shape_n to_o other_o water_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o corruption_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n might_n come_v to_o the_o corruptible_a water_n through_o the_o priest_n blessing_n and_o it_o may_v after_o wash_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n from_o all_o sin_n by_o spiritual_a virtue_n behold_v now_o we_o see_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o one_o creature_n in_o true_a nature_n that_o water_n be_v corruptible_a moisture_n and_o in_o spiritual_a mystery_n have_v heal_v virtue_n so_o also_o if_o we_o behold_v that_o holy_a housel_n after_o bodily_a sense_n then_o see_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o creature_n corruptible_fw-fr and_o mutable_a if_o we_o acknowledge_v therein_o spiritual_a virtue_n then_o understand_v we_o that_o life_n be_v therein_o and_o that_o it_o give_v immortality_n to_o they_o that_o eat_v it_o with_o belief_n 22●_n much_o be_v betwixt_o the_o body_n christ_n suffer_v in_o and_o the_o body_n that_o be_v hallow_v to_o housel_n 214._o the_o body_n true_o that_o christ_n suffer_v in_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o mary_n with_o blood_n and_o with_o bone_n with_o skin_n and_o with_o sinew_n in_o humane_a limb_n with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n live_v and_o his_o spiritual_a body_n which_o we_o call_v the_o housel_n be_v gather_v of_o many_o corn_n without_o blood_n and_o bone_n without_o limb_n without_o soul_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v therein_o bodily_a but_o spiritual_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o that_o housel_n which_o give_v substance_n of_o life_n that_o be_v spiritual_a virtue_n and_o invisible_a do_v 216.217_o certain_o christ_n body_n which_o suffer_v death_n and_o rose_n from_o death_n shall_v never_o die_v henceforth_o but_o be_v eternal_a and_o unpassible_a that_o housel_n be_v temporal_a not_o eternal_a corruptible_a &_o deal_v into_o sundry_a part_n chew_v between_o tooth_n and_o send_v into_o the_o belly_n 222._o this_o mystery_n be_v a_o pledge_n and_o a_o figure_n christ_n body_n be_v truth_n itself_o this_o pledge_n we_o do_v keep_v mystical_o until_o that_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o then_o be_v this_o pledge_n end_v christ_n hallow_a bread_n and_o wine_n to_o housel_n before_o his_o suffering_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o my_o blood_n 193._o yet_o he_o have_v not_o then_o suffer_v but_o so_o notwithstanding_o he_o turn_v through_o invisible_a virtue_n the_o bread_n to_o his_o own_o body_n and_o that_o wine_n to_o his_o blood_n as_o he_o before_o do_v in_o the_o wilderness_n before_o that_o he_o be_v bear_v to_o man_n when_o he_o turn_v that_o heavenly_a meat_n to_o his_o flesh_n and_o the_o flow_a water_n from_o that_o stone_n to_o his_o own_o blood_n 26._o moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o many_o other_o of_o that_o people_n which_o please_v god_n do_v eat_v that_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o they_o die_v not_o the_o everlasting_a death_n though_o they_o die_v the_o common_a they_o see_v that_o the_o heavenly_a meat_n be_v visible_a and_o corruptible_a and_o they_o spiritual_o understand_v by_o that_o visible_a thing_n and_o spiritual_o receive_v it_o this_o homily_n be_v appoint_v public_o to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n in_o england_n on_o easter_n day_n before_o they_o do_v receive_v the_o communion_n the_o like_a matter_n also_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o clergy_n by_o the_o bishop_n at_o their_o synod_n out_o of_o two_o other_o write_n of_o the_o same_o cantabrig_n aelfrick_n in_o the_o one_o whereof_o direct_v to_o wulfsine_n bishop_n of_o shyrburne_n we_o read_v thus_o that_o housel_n be_v christ_n body_n not_o bodily_a but_o spiritual_o not_o the_o body_n which_o he_o suffer_v in_o but_o the_o body_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v when_o he_o bless_a bread_n and_o wine_n to_o housel_n the_o night_n before_o his_o suffering_n and_o say_v by_o the_o bless_a bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o again_o by_o the_o holy_a wine_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o in_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o other_o write_v to_o wulfstane_n archbishop_n of_o york_n thus_o the_o lord_n which_o hallow_a housel_n before_o his_o suffering_n and_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o own_o body_n and_o that_o the_o wine_n be_v true_o his_o blood_n hallow_v daily_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n bread_n to_o his_o body_n and_o wine_n to_o his_o blood_n in_o spiritual_a mystery_n as_o we_o read_v in_o book_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o lively_a bread_n be_v not_o bodily_a so_o nor_o the_o self_n same_o body_n that_o christ_n suffer_v in_o nor_o that_o holy_a wine_n be_v the_o saviour_n blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o in_o bodily_a thing_n but_o in_o spiritual_a understanding_n both_o be_v true_o that_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o that_o wine_n also_o his_o blood_n as_o be_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n which_o we_o call_v manna_n that_o feed_v forty_o year_n god_n people_n and_o the_o clear_a water_n which_o do_v then_o run_v from_o the_o stone_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v true_o his_o blood_n as_o paul_n write_v in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n thus_o be_v priest_n and_o people_n teach_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ten_o and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o eleven_o age_n after_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ._n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v that_o when_o berengarius_fw-la short_o after_o stand_v to_o maintain_v this_o doctrine_n 22._o many_o both_o by_o word_n and_o write_v dispute_v for_o he_o and_o not_o only_o the_o english_a but_o also_o all_o the_o french_a almost_o &_o the_o italian_n as_o 1087._o matthew_n of_o westminster_n report_v be_v so_o ready_a to_o entertain_v that_o which_o he_o deliver_v who_o though_o they_o be_v so_o bear_v down_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o now_o be_v grow_v to_o his_o height_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v yet_o many_o continue_a even_o
lord_n their_o god_n and_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a by_o 77._o give_v knowledge_n of_o salvation_n to_o god_n people_n unto_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n not_o because_o he_o have_v proper_o any_o power_n give_v he_o to_o turn_v man_n heart_n and_o to_o work_v faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n when_o and_o where_o he_o think_v good_a but_o because_o he_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o 93._o word_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v able_a to_o convert_v and_o quicken_v man_n soul_n and_o to_o give_v they_o a_o inheritance_n among_o all_o they_o which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o powerful_a application_n of_o which_o word_n 5.20_o he_o who_o convert_v the_o sinner_n from_o the_o error_n of_o his_o way_n be_v say_v to_o save_v a_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o to_o hide_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n for_o howsoever_o in_o true_a propriety_n 1.21_o the_o cover_n of_o sin_n the_o save_n from_o death_n and_o turn_v of_o man_n from_o their_o iniquity_n be_v a_o privilege_n peculiar_a to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n unto_o who_o alone_o it_o appertain_v to_o 5.19_o reconcile_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o by_o not_o impute_v their_o sin_n unto_o they_o yet_o inasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v commit_v unto_o his_o ambassador_n the_o ibid._n word_n of_o reconciliation_n they_o in_o perform_v that_o work_n of_o their_o ministry_n may_v be_v as_o right_o say_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o reconcile_a man_n unto_o god_n and_o procure_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o they_o be_v say_v to_o 24._o deliver_v a_o man_n from_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n when_o they_o declare_v unto_o he_o his_o righteousness_n and_o to_o 4.16_o save_v their_o hearer_n when_o they_o 11.14_o preach_v unto_o they_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o they_o be_v save_v for_o as_o the_o word_n itself_o which_o they_o speak_v be_v say_v to_o be_v 17.20_o their_o word_n which_o yet_o 2.13_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o the_o work_n which_o be_v effectual_o wrought_v by_o that_o word_n in_o they_o that_o believe_v be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o work_n though_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o god_n and_o as_o they_o that_o believe_v by_o their_o word_n be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o epistle_n 2._o cor._n 3.2_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o epistle_n of_o christ_n minister_v by_o they_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v in_o the_o verse_n follow_v in_o like_a manner_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o those_o other_o great_a grace_n that_o appertain_v to_o the_o believer_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o work_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n minister_v by_o they_o for_o in_o very_a deed_n as_o optatus_n speak_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o baptism_n donatist_n not_o the_o minister_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o believer_n and_o the_o trinity_n do_v bring_v these_o thing_n unto_o every_o man_n and_o where_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v prove_v 18_o the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n only_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o external_a ministry_n must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o man_n but_o 4.7_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o power_n must_v ever_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o they_o 3.7_o neither_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v here_o any_o thing_n neither_o he_o that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n for_o howsoever_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o former_a such_o as_o take_v pain_n in_o the_o lord_n husbandry_n may_v be_v account_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o 9_o apostle_n term_v they_o labourer_n together_o with_o god_n though_o that_o little_a piece_n of_o service_n itself_o also_o be_v not_o perform_v by_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o 10._o according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o yet_o 80._o that_o which_o follow_v of_o give_v the_o increase_n god_n effect_v not_o by_o they_o but_o by_o himself_o this_o say_v s._n augustin_n exceed_v the_o lowliness_n of_o man_n this_o exceed_v the_o sublimity_n of_o angel_n neither_o appertain_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o the_o husbandman_n the_o trinity_n now_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o 12.11_o wo●ke_a diversity_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o distribute_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o will_v but_o also_o make_v we_o to_o 2.12_o know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n so_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v 3.6_o make_v able_a minister_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v not_o only_o ordain_v to_o be_v god_n instrument_n to_o work_v faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o man_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o to_o declare_v god_n pleasure_n unto_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o in_o his_o name_n to_o certify_v they_o and_o give_v assurance_n to_o their_o conscience_n that_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v they_o have_v 20.24_o receive_v this_o ministry_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o testify_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o so_o by_o their_o function_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v witness_n rather_o than_o conferrer_n of_o that_o grace_n for_o it_o be_v here_o with_o they_o in_o the_o lose_a part_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o bind_a part_n of_o their_o ministry_n where_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o like_a unto_o those_o seven_o angel_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n 16.1_o which_o power_n out_o the_o vial_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o earth_n 10.6_o have_v vengeance_n ready_a against_o all_o disobedience_n and_o a_o charge_n from_o god_n to_o 15.1_o cast_v man_n out_o of_o his_o sigh_v not_o because_o they_o be_v proper_o the_o avenger_n for_o that_o 94.1_o title_n god_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o or_o that_o vengeance_n do_v any_o way_n appertain_v unto_o they_o for_o 10.30_o it_o be_v write_v vengeance_n be_v i_o i_o will_v repay_v say_v the_o lord_n but_o because_o they_o be_v the_o denouncer_n not_o the_o inflicter_n of_o this_o vengeance_n so_o though_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o 9_o speak_v concern_v a_o nation_n to_o pluck_v up_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o and_o to_o destroy_v or_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o build_v and_o to_o plant_v it_o yet_o he_o 10_o in_o who_o mouth_n god_n put_v those_o word_n of_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v set_v by_o he_o over_o the_o nation_n and_o over_o the_o kingdom_n to_o root_v out_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o and_o to_o destroy_v and_o to_o throw_v down_o to_o build_v and_o to_o plant_v as_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o doer_n of_o those_o great_a matter_n who_o be_v only_o ●_o ordain_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n unto_o the_o nation_n to_o speak_v the_o thing_n unto_o they_o which_o god_n have_v command_v he_o thus_o likewise_o in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o leviticus_n where_o the_o law_n be_v set_v down_o that_o concern_v the_o leprosy_n which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o pollution_n of_o sin_n we_o meet_v often_o with_o these_o speech_n 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n shall_v cleanse_v he_o and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n shall_v pollute_v he_o and_o in_o the_o 44._o verse_n 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n with_o pollution_n shall_v pollute_v he_o 23._o not_o say_v s._n hierome_n that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o pollution_n but_o that_o he_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v pollute_v who_o before_o do_v seem_v unto_o many_o to_o have_v be_v clean_o whereupon_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n follow_v herein_o s._n hierome_n and_o be_v afterward_o therein_o follow_v himself_o by_o many_o other_o observe_v that_o f._n in_o remit_v or_o retain_v sin_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v that_o right_n and_o office_n which_o the_o legal_a priest_n have_v of_o old_a under_o the_o law_n in_o cure_v of_o the_o leper_n these_o therefore_o say_v he_o forgive_v sin_n or_o retain_v they_o while_o they_o show_v and_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v forgive_v or_o retain_v by_o god_n for_o the_o priest_n put_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n but_o it_o be_v he_o himself_o that_o bless_v they_o as_o it_o be_v read_v in_o number_n the_o place_n that_o he_o have_v reference_n unto_o be_v in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n where_o the_o priest_n be_v command_v to_o bless_v the_o people_n by_o say_v unto_o they_o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n so_o they_o shall_v put_v my_o name_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o i_o will_v bless_v they_o neither_o do_v we_o grant_v hereupon_o as_o the_o ult_n adversary_n false_o charge_v we_o that_o a_o layman_n yea_o or_o a_o woman_n or_o a_o child_n or_o any_o infidel_n or_o the_o devil_n the_o father_n of_o all_o
by_o alcuinus_fw-la 16.7_o o_o lord_n holy_a father_n almighty_a and_o everlasting_a god_n we_o humble_o make_v request_n unto_o thou_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o thy_o servant_n and_o handmaid_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o world_n thou_o have_v call_v unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o will_v vouchsafe_v o_o lord_n to_o give_v unto_o they_o a_o lightsome_a place_n a_o place_n of_o refresh_v and_o ease_n and_o that_o they_o may_v pass_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o way_n of_o darkness_n and_o may_v abide_v in_o the_o mansion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a light_n which_o thou_o do_v promise_v of_o old_a unto_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n so_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v retain_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o roman_a missal_n be_v begin_v with_o this_o orison_n fin_n eternal_a rest_n grant_v unto_o they_o o_o lord_n and_o let_v everlasting_a light_n shine_v unto_o they_o whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v these_o two_o prayer_n to_o omit_v a_o great_a number_n more_o of_o the_o like_a kind_n use_v of_o old_a in_o the_o same_o church_n 52._o receive_v o_o holy_a trinity_n this_o oblation_n which_o we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o all_o that_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o thy_o name_n that_o thou_o reach_v unto_o they_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o thy_o help_n they_o may_v have_v the_o rest_n of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a they_o may_v always_o persevere_v in_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o praise_n and_o 111._o this_o oblation_n which_o we_o humble_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o sleep_v in_o peace_n we_o beseech_v thou_o o_o lord_n receive_v gracious_o and_o of_o thy_o goodness_n grant_v that_o both_o the_o affection_n of_o this_o piety_n may_v profit_v we_o and_o obtain_v for_o they_o everlasting_a bliss_n where_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o soul_n unto_o which_o everlasting_a bliss_n be_v wish_v for_o be_v yet_o acknowledge_v to_o rest_v in_o peace_n &_o consequent_o not_o to_o be_v disquiet_v with_o any_o purgatory_n torment_n even_o as_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n itself_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o commemoration_n for_o the_o dead_a pray_v thus_o 8._o remember_v o_o lord_n thy_o servant_n and_o handmaid_n which_o have_v go_v before_o we_o with_o the_o ensign_n of_o faith_n and_o sleep_v in_o the_o sleep_n of_o peace_n to_o they_o o_o lord_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o christ_n we_o beseech_v thou_o that_o thou_o will_v grant_v a_o place_n of_o refresh_v light_n and_o peace_n nay_o the_o armenian_n in_o their_o liturgy_n entreat_v god_n to_o interp●_n give_v eternal_a peace_n not_o only_o in_o general_a unto_o all_o that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o in_o particular_a to_o the_o patriarch_n apostle_n prophet_n and_o martyr_n which_o make_v direct_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o against_o who_o 49._o nicolaus_n cabasilas_n do_v dispute_v who_o hold_v that_o these_o commemoration_n contain_v a_o supplication_n for_o the_o saint_n unto_o god_n and_o not_o a_o thanksgiving_n only_o as_o also_o do_v those_o form_n of_o prayer_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o roman_a liturgy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o marthae_fw-la let_v such_o a_o oblation_n profit_v such_o or_o such_o a_o saint_n unto_o glory_n and_o especial_o that_o for_o s._n leo_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o elder_a copy_n of_o the_o gregorian_a sacramentarie_n d._n grant_v unto_o we_o o_o lord_n that_o this_o oblation_n may_v profit_v the_o soul_n of_o thy_o servant_n leo._n for_o which_o the_o late_a book_n have_v chop_v in_o this_o prayer_n 314._o grant_v unto_o we_o o_o lord_n that_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o thy_o servant_n leo_n this_o oblation_n may_v profit_v we_o concern_v which_o alteration_n when_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n propound_v such_o another_o question_n unto_o pope_n innocent_n as_o our_o challenger_n at_o the_o beginning_n do_v unto_o we_o 5._o who_o it_o be_v that_o do_v change_v it_o or_o when_o it_o be_v change_v or_o why_o the_o pope_n return_v he_o for_o answer_v ibid._n that_o who_o do_v change_v it_o or_o when_o it_o be_v change_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o yet_o he_o know_v upon_o what_o occasion_n it_o be_v change_v because_o that_o where_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v say_v that_o he_o do_v injury_n unto_o a_o martyr_n who_o pray_v for_o a_o martyr_n which_o be_v a_o new_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o pope_n own_o canonisation_n the_o same_o by_o the_o like_a reason_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v of_o other_o saint_n the_o gloss_n upon_o this_o decretal_a lay_v down_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o mutation_n a_o little_a more_o roundly_o glossa_fw-la of_o old_a they_o pray_v for_o he_o now_o at_o this_o day_n he_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o so_o be_v the_o change_n make_v and_o 7._o alphonsus_n mendoza_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o old_a prayer_n be_v deserve_o disuse_v and_o this_o other_o substitute_v in_o the_o room_n thereof_o grant_v unto_o we_o we_o beseech_v thou_o o_o lord_n that_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o thy_o servant_n leo_n this_o oblation_n may_v profit_v we_o which_o prayer_n indeed_o be_v to_o be_v find_v heretofore_o in_o modernioribus_fw-la sacramentarijs_fw-la as_o pope_n innocent_n speak_v and_o in_o the_o roman_a missall_n that_o be_v publish_v before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o namely_o in_o that_o which_o be_v print_v at_o paris_n a_o 1529._o but_o in_o the_o new_a reform_a missal_n wherewith_o it_o seem_v mendoza_n be_v not_o so_o well_o acquaint_v as_o with_o his_o scholastical_a controversy_n it_o be_v put_v out_o again_o and_o another_o prayer_n for_o leo_n put_v in_o that_o by_o the_o celebration_n of_o those_o leonis_fw-la office_n of_o atonement_n a_o bless_a retribution_n may_v accompany_v he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o more_o wrong_n do_v unto_o s._n leo_n in_o pray_v for_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n then_o unto_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n in_o that_o other_o prayer_n of_o the_o roman_a liturgy_n sacramentario_n we_o have_v receive_v o_o lord_n the_o divine_a mystery_n which_o as_o they_o do_v profit_v thy_o saint_n unto_o glory_n so_o we_o do_v beseech_v thou_o that_o they_o may_v profit_v we_o for_o our_o heal_n and_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o be_v do_v unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a decease_a when_o in_o their_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a they_o say_v daily_o offertorio_n lord_n jesus_n christ_n king_n of_o glory_n deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n and_o from_o the_o deep_a lake_n deliver_v they_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n that_o hell_n do_v not_o swallow_v they_o up_o that_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o darkness_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o commodious_a exposition_n our_o adversary_n can_v bring_v for_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o roman_a service_n the_o same_o may_v we_o make_v use_n of_o to_o show_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n may_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o yet_o in_o so_o do_v have_v no_o relation_n at_o all_o unto_o purgatory_n yea_o and_o pray_v for_o the_o martyr_n and_o other_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o bliss_n without_o offer_v unto_o they_o any_o injury_n thereby_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o prayer_n which_o be_v make_v for_o leo_n and_o the_o other_o saint_n to_o the_o two_o exposition_n bring_v in_o by_o pope_n innocent_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n add_v this_o for_o a_o three_o 18._o that_o peradventure_o therein_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o body_n be_v petition_v for_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o although_o say_v he_o they_o shall_v certain_o obtain_v that_o glory_n &_o it_o be_v due_a unto_o their_o merit_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a to_o desire_v &_o ask_v this_o for_o they_o that_o by_o more_o mean_n it_o may_v be_v due_a unto_o they_o where_o lay_v aside_o those_o unsavourie_a term_n of_o debt_n and_o merit_n whereof_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o treat_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n the_o answer_n be_v otherwise_o true_a in_o part_n but_o not_o full_a enough_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v object_v for_o the_o primary_n intention_n of_o the_o church_n indeed_o in_o her_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a have_v reference_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o also_o in_o diverse_a place_n we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v express_o pray_v for_o as_o in_o the_o egyptian_a liturgy_n attribute_v unto_o s._n cyrill_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n 62._o raise_v up_o their_o body_n in_o the_o day_n which_o thou_o have_v appoint_v according_a to_o thy_o promise_n which_o be_v true_a
labour_v in_o vain_a 1._o thessaly_n 2.19_o for_o what_o be_v our_o hope_n or_o joy_n or_o crown_v of_o rejoice_v be_v not_o even_o you_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o his_o come_n 1._o pet._n 1._o ●_o who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n 1._o corinth_n 5.5_o that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n i●sus_n ephes._n 4.30_o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n luk._n 21.28_o when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o 2._o timoth._n 4.8_o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o luk._n 14.14_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a and_o that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o office_n for_o the_o dead_a have_v special_a respect_n unto_o this_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n appear_v plain_o both_o by_o the_o portion_n of_o scripture_n appoint_v to_o be_v read_v therein_o and_o by_o diverse_a particular_n in_o the_o prayer_n themselves_o that_o manifest_o discover_v this_o intention_n for_o there_o 7._o the_o minister_n as_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n report_v read_v those_o undoubted_a promise_n which_o be_v record_v in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n of_o our_o holy_a resurrection_n and_o then_o devout_o sing_v such_o of_o the_o sacred_a psalm_n as_o be_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o argument_n and_o so_o according_o in_o the_o roman_a missal_n the_o lesson_n ordain_v to_o be_v read_v for_o that_o time_n be_v take_v from_o 1._o corinth_n 15._o behold_v i_o tell_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v all_o rise_v again_o etc._n etc._n joh._n 5._o the_o hour_n come_v wherein_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a shall_v come_v forth_o unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n 1._o thessaly_n 4._o brethren_n we_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a concern_v they_o that_o sleep_n that_o you_o sorrow_n not_o as_o other_o which_o have_v no_o hope_n joh._n 11._o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o although_o he_o be_v dead_a shall_v live_v 2._o maccab._n 12._o judas_n cause_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o dead_a just_o and_o religious_o think_v of_o the_o resurrection_n joh._n 6._o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n that_o send_v i_o that_o every_o one_o that_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o last_o apocal._n 14._o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o i_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o now_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n for_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o wherewith_o the_o sequence_n also_o do_v agree_v beginning_n defunctor_fw-la dies_fw-la irae_fw-la dies_fw-la illa_fw-la soluet_fw-la saeclum_fw-la in_o favillâ_fw-la testae_fw-la david_n cum_fw-la sibyllâ_fw-la and_o end_v lacrymosa_fw-la dies_fw-la illa_fw-la quâ_fw-la resurget_fw-la ex_fw-la favillâ_fw-la judicandus_fw-la homo_fw-la reus_fw-la huic_fw-la ergo_fw-la parce_fw-la deus_fw-la pie_n jesu_n domine_fw-la dona_n eye_v requiem_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogamiâ_n which_o he_o write_v after_o he_o have_v be_v infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o montanist_n speak_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o a_o widow_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o her_o decease_a husband_n say_v that_o 10._o she_o request_v refresh_v for_o he_o and_o a_o portion_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o tang_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o millenaries_n whereunto_o not_o 25._o tertullian_n only_o with_o his_o ult_n prophet_n montanus_n but_o 55._o nepos_n also_o and_o 26._o lactantius_n and_o diverse_a other_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v fall_v who_o misunderstanding_n the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o 20._o of_o the_o revelation_n imagine_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o first_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a that_o shall_v reign_v here_o a_o thousand_o year_n upon_o earth_n and_o after_o that_o a_o second_o resurrection_n of_o the_o wicked_a at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n yet_o in_o a_o certain_a gotthicke_fw-mi missal_n i_o meet_v with_o two_o several_a exhortation_n make_v unto_o the_o people_n to_o pray_v after_o the_o self_n same_o form_n the_o one_o that_o god_n will_v 251._o vouchsafe_v to_o place_n in_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v at_o rest_n and_o admit_v they_o unto_o the_o part_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n the_o other_o which_o i_o find_v elsewhere_o also_o repeat_v in_o particular_a that_o operum_fw-la he_o will_v place_v in_o rest_n the_o spirit_n of_o their_o friend_n which_o be_v go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o lord_n peace_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o in_o the_o part_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n which_o how_o it_o may_v be_v excuse_v otherwise_o then_o by_o say_v that_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n 4.16_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v fi●st_v and_o then_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v raise_v after_o they_o and_o by_o refer_v the_o first_o resurrection_n unto_o the_o 14.14_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a which_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o day_n i_o can_v well_o resolve_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o first_o resurrection_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n and_o error_n in_o this_o world_n as_o the_o second_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v both_o which_o be_v distinct_o lay_v down_o by_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n the_o first_o in_o the_o 25._o verse_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o hear_v shall_v live_v the_o second_o in_o the_o 28._o and_o 29._o marveile_v not_o at_o this_o for_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n and_o to_o this_o general_a resurrection_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o last_o day_n have_v the_o church_n relation_n in_o her_o prayer_n some_o pattern_n whereof_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o exhibit_v here_o in_o these_o example_n follow_v a._n although_o the_o condition_n of_o death_n bring_v in_o upon_o mankind_n do_v make_v our_o heart_n and_o mind_n heavy_a yet_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o thy_o clemency_n we_o be_v raise_v up_o with_o the_o hope_n of_o future_a immortality_n and_o be_v mindful_a of_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o sustain_v the_o loss_n of_o this_o light_n for_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o thy_o grace_n life_n be_v not_o take_v away_o to_o the_o faithful_a but_o change_v and_o the_o soul_n be_v free_v from_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o body_n abhor_v thing_n mortal_a when_o they_o attain_v unto_o thing_n eternal_a wherefore_o we_o beseech_v thou_o that_o thy_o servant_n n._n be_v place_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o bless_a may_v rejoice_v that_o he_o have_v escape_v the_o strait_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o in_o the_o desire_n of_o glorification_n expect_v with_o confidence_n the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 235._o through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n who_o holy_a passion_n we_o celebrate_v without_o doubt_n for_o immortal_a and_o well_o rest_a soul_n for_o they_o especial_o upon_o who_o thou_o have_v bestow_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o second_o birth_n who_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n have_v begin_v to_o be_v secure_a of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o thou_o who_o have_v make_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o be_v able_a to_o repair_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o evidence_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v not_o only_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n but_o also_o by_o the_o
that_o 44._o infidel_n and_o wicked_a man_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o then_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n which_o be_v appoint_v unto_o everlasting_a punishment_n shall_v in_o his_o practice_n be_v find_v to_o be_v so_o much_o different_a from_o his_o judgement_n the_o second_o tale_n touch_v upon_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherein_o the_o theclae_fw-la apostolesse_n thecla_n be_v say_v to_o have_v pray_v for_o falconilla_n the_o daughter_n of_o tryphaena_n who_o s._n paul_n salute_v rom._n 16.12_o damascen_n a_o gentile_a and_o a_o idolatress_n altogether_o profane_a and_o a_o servitor_n of_o another_o god_n to_o this_o effect_n theclae_fw-la o_o god_n son_n of_o the_o true_a god_n grant_v unto_o tryphaena_n according_a to_o thy_o will_n that_o her_o daughter_n may_v live_v with_o thou_o time_n without_o end_n or_o as_o basil_n bishop_n of_o seleucia_n do_v express_v it_o the●lae_fw-la grant_v unto_o thy_o servant_n tryphaena_n that_o her_o desire_n may_v be_v fulfil_v concern_v her_o daughter_n her_o desire_n therein_o be_v this_o that_o her_o soul_n may_v be_v number_v among_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o have_v already_o believe_v in_o thou_o and_o may_v enjoy_v the_o life_n and_o pleasure_n that_o be_v in_o paradise_n the_o three_o tale_n he_o produce_v out_o of_o palladius_n his_o historical_a book_n write_v unto_o lausus_n although_o neither_o in_o the_o greek_a set_v out_o by_o meursius_n nor_o in_o the_o three_o several_a latin_a edition_n of_o that_o history_n publish_v before_o the●e_n be_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v touch_v a_o dead_a man_n skull_n that_o shall_v have_v utter_v this_o speech_n unto_o macarius_n the_o great_a egyptian_a anchorer_n damasken_n when_o thou_o do_v offer_v up_o thy_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a then_o do_v we_o feel_v some_o little_a consolation_n a_o brainless_a answer_n you_o may_v well_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v that_o must_v be_v think_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o a_o dry_a skull_n lie_v by_o the_o highway_n side_n but_o as_o brainless_a as_o it_o be_v it_o have_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_v the_o quick_a head_n of_o our_o romish_a divine_n and_o put_v m●ny_v a_o odd_a cratchet_n into_o their_o nimble_a brain_n renatus_n laurentius_n tell_v we_o that_o 33._o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o be_v a_o angel_n that_o do_v speak_v in_o this_o skull_n and_o 5_o i_o say_v quoth_v alphonsus_n mendoza_n that_o this_o head_n which_o lie_v in_o the_o way_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o one_o that_o be_v damn_v but_o of_o a_o just_a man_n remain_v in_o purgatory_n for_o damascen_n do_v not_o say_v in_o that_o sermon_n that_o i●_n be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o gentile_a as_o it_o may_v there_o be_v see_v and_o true_a it_o be_v indeed_o he_o neither_o say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o neither_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o the_o grecian_n general_o relate_v the_o matter_n thus_o that_o macarius_n 19_o do_v hear_v this_o from_o the_o skull_n of_o one_o that_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n of_o idol_n which_o he_o find_v lie_v in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o by_o his_o prayer_n such_o as_o be_v with_o he_o in_o punishment_n receive_v a_o little_a ease_n of_o their_o torment_n whensoever_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o he_o make_v the_o same_o for_o they_o and_o among_o the_o latin_n thomas_n aquinas_n and_o other_o of_o the_o schoolman_n take_v this_o for_o grant_v because_o they_o find_v in_o the_o live_v of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o speech_n which_o the_o dead_a skull_n use_v be_v this_o 656._o i_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o john_n the_o roman_a subdeacon_n translate_v it_o or_o as_o rufinus_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v render_v it_o i_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o idol_n which_o dwell_v in_o this_o place_n and_o thou_o be_v abbot_n macarius_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n at_o whatsoever_o hour_n therefore_o thou_o take_v pity_n of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o torment_n and_o pray_v for_o they_o they_o then_o feel_v some_o consolation_n well_o say_v mendoza_n then_o supr_n if_o s._n thomas_n relate_v this_o history_n out_o of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o father_n do_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o gentile_a he_o himself_o be_v bind_v to_o untie_v this_o knot_n and_o so_o he_o do_v resolve_v the_o matter_n thus_o 15._o that_o the_o damn_a get_v no_o true_a ease_n by_o the_o prayer_n make_v for_o they_o but_o such_o a_o fantastical_a kind_n of_o joy_n only_o as_o the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o have_v when_o they_o have_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v any_o man_n ●8_o but_o peradventure_o say_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n for_o the_o upshott_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v bring_v touch_v that_o skull_n may_v better_o be_v reject_v as_o false_a and_o apocryphal_a and_o stephen_n durant_n more_o peremptory_o 12._o the_o thing_n which_o be_v tell_v of_o trajan_n and_o falconilla_n deliver_v out_o of_o hell_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o s_o gregory_n and_o thecla_n and_o of_o the_o dry_a skull_n speak_v too_o by_o macarius_n be_v feign_v and_o commentitious_a which_o last_o answer_n though_o it_o be_v the_o true_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v for_o all_o that_o but_o that_o the_o general_a credit_n which_o these_o fable_n obtain_v together_o with_o the_o countenance_n which_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o origenist_n do_v receive_v from_o didymus_n euagrius_n gregory_n nyssen_n if_o he_o be_v not_o corrupt_v and_o other_o doctor_n incline_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n very_o much_o to_o apply_v the_o common_a use_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a unto_o this_o wrong_a end_n of_o hope_v to_o relieve_v the_o damn_a thereby_o s._n augustine_n do_v show_v that_o in_o his_o time_n not_o only_o 112._o some_o but_o exceed_v many_o also_o do_v out_o of_o a_o humane_a affection_n take_v compassion_n of_o the_o eternal_a pain_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v never_o have_v a_o end_n and_o notwithstanding_o this_o error_n be_v public_o condemn_v afterward_o in_o the_o origenist_n by_o the_o five_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n yet_o by_o idle_a and_o voluptuous_a person_n be_v it_o still_o greedy_o embrace_v as_o suae_fw-la climacus_n complain_v and_o 16._o even_o now_o also_o say_v s._n gregory_n there_o be_v some_o who_o therefore_o neglect_v to_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o their_o sin_n because_o they_o imagine_v that_o the_o judgement_n which_o be_v to_o come_v upon_o they_o shall_v sometime_o have_v a_o end_n yea_o of_o late_a day_n this_o opinion_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o porretanians_n as_o thomas_n call_v they_o and_o some_o of_o the_o juristarum_fw-la canonist_n the_o one_o follow_v therein_o gilbert_n porreta_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n in_o his_o book_n of_o theological_a question_n the_o other_o john_n semeca_n in_o his_o gloss_n upon_o gratian_n that_o by_o the_o prayer_n and_o suffrage_n of_o the_o live_a the_o pain_n of_o some_o of_o the_o damn_a be_v continual_o diminish_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o infinite_a proportionable_a part_n may_v be_v take_v from_o a_o line_n without_o ever_o come_v unto_o a_o end_n of_o the_o division_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o take_v from_o they_o at_o the_o last_o all_o pain_n of_o sense_n or_o sense_n of_o pain_n for_o as_o 2._o thomas_n observe_v it_o right_o and_o 8._o durand_n after_o he_o in_o the_o division_n of_o a_o line_n at_o last_o we_o must_v come_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v not_o sensible_a consider_v that_o a_o sensible_a body_n can_v be_v divide_v infinite_o and_o so_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o after_o many_o suffrage_n that_o pain_n remain_v shall_v not_o be_v sensible_a and_o consequent_o shall_v be_v no_o pain_n at_o all_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o the_o invention_n of_o all_o soul_n day_n of_o which_o you_o may_v read_v if_o you_o please_v polydore_n vergil_n in_o his_o six_o book_n of_o the_o inventor_n of_o thing_n and_o the_o nine_o chapter_n that_o solemn_a day_n i_o say_v wherein_o our_o romanist_n most_o devout_o perform_v all_o their_o superstitious_a observance_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v occasion_v at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o this_o same_o erroneous_a conceit_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a may_v not_o only_o be_v ease_v but_o full_o also_o deliver_v by_o the_o alm_n &_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n the_o whole_a narration_n of_o the_o business_n be_v thus_o lay_v down_o by_o sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la in_o his_o chronicle_n at_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 998._o 998._o this_o time_n say_v he_o a_o certain_a religious_a man_n return_v from_o jerusalem_n be_v entertain_v for_o a_o while_n in_o sicily_n by_o the_o courtesy_n of_o a_o certain_a anchoret_n learn_v from_o he_o among_o
other_o matter_n that_o there_o be_v place_n near_o unto_o they_o that_o use_v to_o cast_v up_o burn_a flame_n which_o by_o the_o inhabitant_n be_v call_v the_o potts_n of_o vulcan_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o reprobate_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o desert_n do_v suffer_v diverse_a punishment_n the_o devil_n be_v there_o depute_v for_o the_o execution_n thereof_o who_o voice_n anger_n and_o terror_n and_o sometime_o howl_n also_o he_o say_v he_o often_o hear_v as_o lament_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n by_o the_o alm_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o more_o at_o this_o time_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o clunie_n who_o pray_v without_o cease_v for_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o that_o be_v decease_v the_o abbot_n odilo_n have_v understand_v this_o by_o he_o appoint_v throughout_o all_o the_o monastery_n under_o his_o subjection_n that_o as_o upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o november_n the_o solemnity_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v observe_v so_o upon_o the_o day_n follow_v the_o memorial_n of_o all_o that_o rest_v in_o christ_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v which_o rite_n pass_v into_o many_o other_o church_n make_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_a to_o be_v solemnize_v for_o the_o elect_a this_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n commune_v o_o god_n unto_o who_o alone_o be_v know_v the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a that_o be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o supernal_a bliss_n grant_v we_o beseech_v thou_o that_o the_o book_n of_o bless_a predestination_n may_v retain_v the_o name_n of_o all_o those_o who_o we_o have_v undertake_v to_o recommend_v in_o our_o prayer_n or_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v write_v therein_o and_o to_o pray_v that_o the_o name_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n election_n shall_v still_o be_v retain_v therein_o may_v be_v somewhat_o tolerable_a consider_v as_o the_o divine_n of_o that_o side_n have_v inform_v we_o that_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v pray_v for_o which_o we_o know_v most_o certain_o wilcome_a to_o pass_v but_o hardly_o i_o think_v shall_v you_o find_v in_o any_o ritual_a a_o form_n of_o prayer_n answerable_a to_o this_o of_o the_o monk_n of_o clunie_n for_o the_o reprobate_n unless_o it_o be_v that_o whereby_o s._n francis_n be_v say_v to_o have_v obtain_v that_o friat_fw-la elias_n shall_v be_v make_v 21._o ex_fw-la praescito_fw-la praedestinatus_fw-la a_o elect_a of_o a_o reprobare_fw-la yet_o it_o seem_v that_o some_o be_v not_o very_o well_o please_v that_o what_o be_v do_v so_o seldom_o by_o s._n francis_n the_o 1.2_o angel_n of_o the_o friar_n &_o that_o for_o a_o reprobate_a yet_o live_a shall_v be_v so_o usual_o practise_v by_o the_o follower_n of_o s._n odilo_n the_o 66._o archangel_n of_o the_o monk_n for_o reprobate_n that_o be_v dead_a &_o therefore_o in_o the_o common_a edition_n of_o sigeberts_n chronicle_n they_o have_v clean_o strike_v out_o the_o word_n damnatorum_fw-la &_o instead_o of_o reproborun_v chop_v in_o defunctorum_fw-la which_o depravation_n may_v be_v detect_v aswell_o by_o the_o sincere_a edition_n of_o sigebert_n publish_v by_o aubertus_n miraeus_n out_o of_o the_o manuscript_n of_o gemblac_n abby_n w_z ch_z be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o original_a copy_n of_o sigebert_n himself_o as_o by_o the_o compare_v of_o he_o with_o petrus_n damiani_n in_o the_o life_n of_o odilo_n whence_o this_o whole_a narration_n be_v by_o he_o borrow_v for_o there_o also_o do_v we_o read_v that_o in_o those_o flame_a place_n 1_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o reprobate_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o desert_n do_v suffer_v diverse_a torment_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n do_v complain_v ibid._n that_o by_o the_o alm_n and_o prayer_n of_o odilo_n and_o other_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n by_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v see_v what_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n press_v so_o much_o against_o we_o out_o of_o epiphanius_n that_o he_o 14._o name_v a_o obscure_a fellow_n one_o aërius_n to_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o this_o heresy_n that_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n profit_v not_o the_o depart_v in_o christ._n for_o neither_o do_v epiphanius_n name_v this_o to_o be_v a_o heresy_n neither_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o himself_o do_v hold_v that_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n bring_v such_o profit_n to_o the_o dead_a as_o these_o man_n dream_v they_o do_v he_o be_v much_o deceive_v who_o think_v every_o thing_n that_o epiphanius_n find_v fault_n withal_o in_o heretic_n be_v esteem_v by_o he_o to_o be_v a_o heresy_n see_v heresy_n can_v be_v but_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o course_n which_o epiphanius_n take_v in_o that_o work_n be_v not_o only_o to_o declare_v in_o what_o special_a point_n of_o faith_n heretic_n do_v dissent_v from_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o in_o what_o particular_a observance_n also_o they_o refuse_v to_o follow_v the_o receive_v custom_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n he_o set_v down_o a_o brief_a 465._o first_o of_o the_o faith_n and_o then_o of_o the_o ordinance_n and_o observance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o among_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o latter_a kind_n he_o rehearse_v this_o 466._o for_o the_o dead_a they_o make_v commemoration_n by_o name_n perform_v or_o when_o they_o do_v perform_v their_o prayer_n and_o divine_a service_n and_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o dispute_v against_o aërius_n touch_v the_o point_n itself_o he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o charge_v he_o with_o forsake_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o those_o that_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n but_o with_o reject_v the_o order_n observe_v by_o the_o church_n in_o her_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v a_o ancient_a institution_n bring_v in_o upon_o wonderful_a good_a consideration_n shall_v not_o by_o this_o humorous_a heretic_n have_v be_v thus_o condemn_v 388._o the_o church_n say_v he_o do_v necessary_o perform_v this_o have_v receive_v it_o by_o tradition_n from_o the_o father_n and_o who_o may_v dissolve_v the_o ordinance_n of_o his_o mother_n or_o the_o law_n of_o his_o father_n and_o again_o ibid._n our_o mother_n the_o church_n have_v ordinance_n settle_v in_o she_o which_o be_v inviolable_a and_o may_v not_o be_v break_v see_v then_o there_o be_v ordinance_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v well_o and_o all_o thing_n be_v admirable_o do_v this_o seducer_n be_v again_o refute_v for_o the_o further_a open_v hereof_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o consider_v both_o of_o the_o objection_n of_o aërius_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n of_o epiphanius_n thus_o do_v aërius_n argue_v against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n 386._o for_o what_o reason_n do_v you_o commemorate_v after_o death_n the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o be_v depart_v he_o that_o be_v alive_a pray_v or_o make_v dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n what_o shall_v the_o dead_a be_v profit_v hereby_o and_o if_o the_o prayer_n of_o those_o here_o do_v altogether_o profit_v they_o that_o be_v there_o then_o let_v no_o body_n be_v godly_a let_v no_o man_n do_v good_a but_o let_v he_o procure_v some_o friend_n by_o what_o mean_v it_o please_v he_o either_o persuade_v they_o by_o money_n or_o entreat_v friend_n at_o his_o death_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o he_o may_v suffer_v nothing_o there_o and_o that_o those_o inexpiable_a sin_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v may_v not_o be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v aërius_n his_o argumentation_n which_o will_v have_v be_v of_o force_n indeed_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v hold_v as_o many_o do_v that_o the_o judgement_n after_o death_n be_v suspend_v until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o dead_a may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o live_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v consider_v as_o stephanus_n gobarus_n who_o be_v as_o great_a a_o heretic_n as_o himself_o do_v that_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o agree_v upon_o the_o point_n some_o of_o they_o maintain_v 232._o the_o soul_n of_o every_o one_o that_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n receive_v very_o great_a profit_n by_o the_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n and_o alm_n that_o be_v perform_v for_o he_o and_o other_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a part_n of_o he_o to_o confound_v the_o private_a opinion_n of_o some_o with_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o he_o reprove_v this_o
his_o spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n and_o of_o noë_n in_o particular_a when_o god_n have_v say_v that_o his_o spirit_n 6.3_o shall_v not_o always_o strive_v with_o man_n because_o he_o be_v flesh_n do_v in_o his_o long_a suffering_n wait_v the_o expiration_n of_o the_o time_n which_o he_o then_o do_v set_v for_o his_o amendment_n even_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n for_o which_o exposition_n the_o aethiopian_a translation_n make_v something_o where_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v quicken_v and_o to_o have_v preach_v be_v by_o the_o interpreter_n term_v manphes_n kade_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o addition_n of_o which_o epithet_n we_o may_v observe_v also_o to_o be_v use_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o by_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ._n for_o of_o the_o one_o we_o read_v rom._n 1.4_o that_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n or_o the_o most_o holy_a spirit_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o the_o other_o act._n 1.2_o that_o he_o give_v commandment_n to_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n thus_o do_v s._n hierome_n relate_v that_o 54._o a_o most_o prudent_a man_n for_o so_o he_o term_v he_o do_v understand_v this_o place_n jbid._n he_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n put_v in_o prison_n when_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n do_v wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noë_n bring_v in_o the_o flood_n upon_o the_o wicked_a as_o if_o this_o preach_n be_v then_o perform_v when_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n do_v expect_v the_o conversion_n of_o those_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o day_n of_o noë_n s._n augustine_n more_o direct_o wish_v we_o to_o 99_o consider_v least_o happy_o all_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n shut_v up_o in_o prison_n which_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o noë_n pertain_v nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o hell_n but_o rather_o to_o those_o time_n which_o he_o compare_v as_o a_o pattern_n with_o our_o time_n for_o christ_n say_v he_o ibid._n before_o ever_o he_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o die_v for_o we_o which_o once_o he_o do_v come_v often_o before_o in_o the_o spirit_n to_o such_o as_o he_o please_v admonish_v they_o by_o vision_n in_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o please_v by_o which_o spirit_n he_o be_v also_o quicken_v when_o in_o his_o passion_n he_o be_v mortify_v in_o the_o flesh_n venerable_a bede_n and_o walafridus_n strabus_n in_o the_o ordinary_a gloss_n after_o he_o set_v down_o their_o mind_n herein_o yet_o more_o resolute_o ibid._n he_o who_o in_o our_o time_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n preach_v the_o way_n of_o life_n unto_o the_o world_n even_o he_o himself_o also_o before_o the_o flood_n come_v in_o the_o spirit_n preach_v unto_o they_o which_o then_o be_v unbeliever_n and_o live_v carnal_o for_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n he_o be_v in_o noë_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o by_o their_o good_a conversation_n preach_v to_o the_o wicked_a man_n of_o that_o age_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v to_o a_o better_a course_n of_o life_n the_o same_o exposition_n be_v follow_v by_o anselmus_n laudunensis_n in_o the_o interlineary_a gloss_n 3_o thomas_n aquinas_n in_o his_o sum_n and_o diverse_a other_o in_o their_o commentary_n upon_o this_o place_n yea_o since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o a_o book_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o trent_n doctor_n andradius_fw-la profess_v that_o he_o think_v this_o to_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o place_n 2._o in_o which_o spirit_n he_o himself_o long_o since_o come_v that_o we_o may_v not_o imagine_v that_o he_o now_o first_o undertake_v the_o care_n of_o his_o church_n do_v preach_v unto_o those_o spirit_n which_o now_o in_o prison_n do_v suffer_v the_o deserved_a pain_n of_o their_o infidelity_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v noë_n give_v they_o good_a counsel_n and_o build_v the_o ark_n by_o god_n appointment_n notwithstanding_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n do_v wait_v for_o they_o very_o long_o to_o wit_n a_o hundred_o year_n or_o more_o which_o accord_v full_o with_o that_o interpretation_n of_o s._n peter_n word_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o learned_a of_o our_o side_n in_o which_o spirit_n he_o have_v go_v and_o preach_v ●o_o they_o that_o now_o be_v spirit_n in_o prison_n because_o they_o disobey_v when_o the_o time_n be_v when_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n once_o wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noë_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v 1._o pet._n 3.19_o 20._o but_o there_o be_v diverse_a apocryphal_a scripture_n and_o tradition_n afoot_a in_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o do_v so_o possess_v man_n mind_n with_o the_o conceit_n of_o christ_n preach_v in_o hell_n that_o they_o never_o seek_v for_o any_o further_a meaning_n in_o s._n peter_n word_n as_o that_o sentence_n especial_o which_o be_v father_v upon_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n or_o jeremy_n and_o from_o whence_o if_o cardinal_n 13._o bellarmine_n wisdom_n may_v be_v hear_v it_o be_v credible_a that_o s._n peter_n take_v his_o word_n namely_o 31._o the_o lord_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n remember_v his_o dead_a which_o sleep_v in_o the_o earth_n of_o their_o grave_n and_o descend_v to_o they_o to_o preach_v unto_o they_o his_o salvation_n and_o that_o blind_a tradition_n which_o anastasius_n sindita_n do_v thus_o lay_v down_o immediate_o after_o his_o citation_n of_o s._n peter_n text_n 111._o it_o be_v now_o relate_v among_o the_o old_a tradition_n that_o a_o certain_a scholar_n use_v many_o opprobrious_a speech_n against_o plato_n the_o philosopher_n plato_n appear_v unto_o he_o in_o his_o sleep_n and_o say_v man_n forbear_v to_o use_v opprobrious_a speech_n against_o i_o for_o thereby_o thou_o hurte_v thyself_o that_o i_o be_v a_o sinful_a man_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o when_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n in_o very_a deed_n none_o do_v believe_v in_o he_o before_o myself_o nicetas_n serronius_n recite_v this_o out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o father_n pascha_fw-la which_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o no_o i_o leave_v say_v he_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o hearer_n as_o if_o any_o great_a matter_n of_o judgement_n shall_v be_v requisite_a for_o the_o discern_a of_o this_o to_o be_v as_o bellarmine_n do_v censure_v it_o 16._o a_o fable_n or_o as_o dionysius_n carthusianus_n before_o he_o 3._o a_o apocryphal_a dream_n the_o like_a stuff_n be_v that_o also_o which_o be_v vent_v heretofore_o unto_o the_o world_n in_o the_o apocryphal_a gospel_n of_o nicodemus_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o that_o sentence_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a edition_n of_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 24.45_o i_o will_v pierce_v all_o the_o lower-most_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o behold_v all_o that_o be_v asleep_a and_o enlighten_v all_o they_o that_o hope_v in_o the_o lord_n which_o although_o it_o be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o greek_a original_a and_o have_v perhaps_o another_o meaning_n then_o that_o to_o which_o it_o be_v apply_v yet_o be_v it_o make_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n upon_o matthew_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a inducement_n which_o lead_v he_o to_o think_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o visit_v there_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o tradition_n that_o of_o all_o other_o deserve_v great_a consideration_n be_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n touch_v christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n which_o trinitate_fw-la genebrard_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v so_o hateful_a to_o the_o arrian_n that_o as_o ambrose_n report_v upon_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n they_o strike_v it_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o very_a creed_n but_o neither_o be_v there_o the_o least_o footstep_n of_o any_o such_o matter_n to_o be_v see_v in_o s._n ambrose_n and_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v otherwise_o that_o the_o arrian_n do_v not_o only_o add_v this_o article_n unto_o their_o creed_n but_o also_o set_v it_o forth_o and_o amplify_v it_o with_o many_o word_n so_o far_o off_o be_v they_o from_o be_v guilty_a of_o suppress_v it_o for_o as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n cccxxv_o at_o nice_a in_o bythinia_n do_v publish_v a_o creed_n against_o the_o arrian_n so_o the_o arrian_n on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o the_o year_n ccclix_o set_v out_o a_o creed_n of_o their_o own_o make_n in_o a_o synod_n purposely_o keep_v by_o they_o at_o nice_a in_o thracia_n 18._o that_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o
to_o my_o father_n who_o while_o thou_o search_v for_o i_o among_o the_o infernals_n do_v distrust_v that_o i_o be_o return_v to_o the_o celestial_n while_o thou_o seek_v i_o among_o the_o dead_a do_v not_o hope_v that_o i_o do_v live_v with_o my_o father_n where_o his_o inferi_n and_o inferna_fw-la do_v plain_o import_v no_o more_o but_o tumulos_fw-la and_o sepulchra_fw-la hereupon_o ruffinus_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n have_v give_v notice_n symbol_n that_o in_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v not_o add_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n neither_o adjoin_v present_o yet_o the_o force_n or_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v bury_v for_o the_o term_n of_o burial_n and_o descend_v into_o hell_n in_o the_o scripture_n phrase_n tend_v much_o to_o the_o express_v of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n but_o that_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o the_o one_o do_v lead_v we_o only_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o burial_n the_o addition_n of_o the_o other_o intimate_v unto_o we_o that_o which_o be_v more_o dishonourable_a in_o it_o thus_o under_o the_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v be_v comprehend_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o funeration_n and_o his_o inter_v which_o be_v both_o of_o they_o set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o s._n john_n the_o latter_a in_o the_o two_o last_o verse_n where_o joseph_n and_o nicodemus_n be_v say_v to_o have_v lay_v he_o in_o a_o new_a sepulchre_n wherein_o be_v never_o man_n yet_o lay_v the_o former_a in_o the_o two_o verse_n go_v before_o where_o it_o be_v record_v that_o they_o wound_v his_o body_n in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o spice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o bury_v for_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o funeration_n belong_v the_o embalm_v of_o the_o dead_a body_n &_o all_o other_o office_n that_o be_v perform_v unto_o it_o while_o it_o remain_v above_o ground_n so_o gen._n 50.2_o where_o the_o physician_n be_v say_v to_o have_v imbalm_v israel_n the_o greek_a translator_n render_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o when_o mary_n pour_v the_o precious_a ointment_n upon_o our_o saviour_n himself_o interprete_v this_o to_o have_v be_v do_v for_o his_o 12.7_o funeration_n or_o burial_n palmarum_fw-la for_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n in_o time_n past_a say_v eusebius_n common_o call_v emissenus_fw-la that_o the_o body_n of_o noble_a man_n be_v to_o be_v bury_v shall_v first_o be_v anoint_v with_o precious_a ointment_n and_o bury_v with_o spice_n and_o 15.55_o who_o know_v not_o say_v stapleton_n that_o a_o sepulchre_n be_v a_o honour_n to_o the_o dead_a and_o not_o a_o disgrace_n but_o the_o mention_n of_o sheol_n which_o have_v special_a relation_n as_o have_v be_v show_v to_o the_o dispose_n of_o the_o dead_a body_n unto_o corruption_n and_o so_o of_o hades_n infernus_fw-la or_o hell_n answer_v thereunto_o carry_v we_o further_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o sow_v of_o the_o body_n in_o corruption_n and_o dishonour_n 1._o corinth_n 15.42_o 43._o for_o which_o that_o place_n in_o s._n augustine_n be_v worth_a the_o consideration_n augustin_n do_v not_o the_o hell_n or_o the_o grave_a give_v testimony_n unto_o christ_n when_o lose_v their_o power_n they_o reserve_v lazarus_n who_o they_o have_v receive_v to_o dissolve_v for_o four_o day_n together_o that_o they_o may_v restore_v he_o safe_a again_o when_o they_o do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o lord_n command_v it_o where_o you_o may_v observe_v a_o h●ll_o appoint_v for_o the_o dissolution_n of_o dead_a man_n body_n the_o descend_v into_o which_o according_a to_o ruffinus_n his_o note_n differ_v little_a or_o nothing_o from_o the_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_a in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o act_n s_o paul_n preach_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o god_n raise_v up_o his_o son_n from_o the_o dead_a 34._o not_o to_o return_v now_o any_o more_o unto_o corruption_n and_o yet_o present_o add_v that_o therein_o be_v verify_v that_o prophecy_n in_o the_o psalm_n 16.10_o thou_o will_v not_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n imply_v thereby_o that_o he_o descend_v in_o some_o sort_n for_o a_o time_n into_o corruption_n although_o in_o that_o time_n he_o do_v not_o suffer_v corruption_n and_o 3._o do_v not_o wonder_v say_v s._n ambrose_n how_o he_o shall_v descend_v into_o corruption_n who_o flesh_n do_v not_o see_v corruption_n he_o do_v descend_v indeed_o into_o the_o place_n of_o corruption_n who_o pierce_v the_o hell_n but_o be_v uncorrupted_a he_o shut_v out_o corruption_n for_o as_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o prophet_n use_v in_o the_o psalm_n do_v signify_v as_o well_o the_o pit_n or_o place_n of_o corruption_n as_o the_o corruption_n itself_o so_o also_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereby_o s._n luke_n do_v express_v the_o same_o be_v use_v by_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o signify_v not_o the_o corruption_n itself_o alone_o but_o the_o very_a place_n of_o it_o likewise_o as_o where_o we_o read_v in_o psalm_n 7.15_o he_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n which_o he_o make_v and_o psalm_n 9.16_o the_o heathen_a be_v sink_v down_o in_o the_o pit_n that_o they_o make_v and_o proverb_n 26.27_o who_o so_o dig_v a_o pit_n shall_v fall_v therein_o aquila_n in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o septuagint_n in_o the_o second_o aquila_n and_o symmachus_n in_o the_o three_o retain_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o sheol_n hades_n or_o hell_n may_v thus_o be_v understand_v to_o have_v descend_v into_o corruption_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o the_o pit_n or_o place_n of_o corruption_n as_o s._n ambrose_n interprete_v it_o although_o he_o be_v free_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n from_o the_o passion_n of_o corruption_n and_o because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hell_n and_o corruption_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n therefore_o do_v the_o arabic_a interpreter_n corruption_n translate_v by_o junius_n in_o act._n 2.31_o or_o as_o the_o arabian_a divide_v the_o book_n act._n 4.10_o confound_v they_o together_o and_o retain_v the_o same_o word_n in_o both_o the_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n after_o this_o manner_n he_o be_v not_o leave_v in_o perdition_n neither_o do_v his_o flesh_n see_v perdition_n even_o as_o in_o the_o 29._o psalm_n or_o the_o 30._o according_a to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o arabic_a read_v notat_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d al-gehim_a or_o hell_n where_o the_o greek_a have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o house_n of_o the_o grave_n athanasius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n write_v against_o the_o gentile_n observe_v that_o when_o god_n threaten_v our_o first_o parent_n that_o whatsoever_o day_n they_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n they_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n by_o ●9_n die_v the_o death_n he_o signify_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o only_o die_v but_o also_o remain_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o death_n &_o that_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o 54._o free_v we_o from_o this_o corruption_n keep_v his_o own_o body_n uncorrupted_a as_o a_o pledge_n and_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o future_a resurrection_n of_o we_o all_o which_o have_v wrought_v such_o a_o contempt_n of_o death_n in_o his_o disciple_n that_o as_o he_o add_v afterward_o we_o may_v 59_o see_v man_n which_o be_v by_o nature_n weak_a leap_v or_o dance_v unto_o death_n be_v not_o aghast_a at_o the_o corruption_n thereof_o nor_o fear_v the_o descent_n into_o hell_n so_o the_o grecian_n sing_v in_o their_o liturgy_n at_o this_o day_n anastasimo_fw-la the_o corruption-working_a palace_n of_o hell_n be_v dissolve_v when_o thou_o do_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_a o_o lord_n and_o again_o pentecostario_fw-la the_o stone_n be_v roll_v away_o the_o grave_n be_v empty_v behold_v corruption_n be_v tread_v under_o by_o life_n that_o which_o be_v mortal_a be_v save_v by_o the_o flesh_n of_o god_n hell_n mourn_v for_o god_n say_v 27._o origen_n will_v neither_o leave_v our_o soul_n in_o hell_n nor_o suffer_v we_o to_o remain_v for_o ever_o in_o corruption_n but_o he_o that_o recall_v he_o after_o the_o three_o day_n from_o hell_n will_v recall_v we_o also_o in_o
sentence_n of_o diphilus_n the_o old_a comical_a poet._n indeed_o in_o hades_n we_o resolve_v there_o be_v two_o path_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o other_o of_o the_o wicked_a but_o as_o in_o this_o general_n they_o agree_v together_o both_o among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o truth_n so_o touch_v the_o particular_a situation_n of_o this_o háde_n and_o the_o special_a place_n whereunto_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o soul_n be_v dispose_v and_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n there_o a_o number_n of_o ridiculous_a fiction_n and_o fond_a conceit_n be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o they_o wherein_o they_o dissent_v as_o much_o from_o one_o another_o as_o they_o do_v from_o the_o truth_n itself_o so_o we_o see_v for_o example_n 9.10.11.12_o that_o the_o best_a soul_n be_v place_v by_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o company_n of_o their_o god_n in_o heaven_n by_o other_o in_o the_o galaxias_n or_o milky_a circle_n by_o other_o beyond_o the_o ocean_n and_o by_o other_o under_o the_o earth_n 37._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yet_o one_o háde_n notwithstanding_o be_v common_o think_v to_o have_v receive_v they_o all_o plato_n relate_v this_o as_o a_o sentence_n deliver_v by_o they_o who_o be_v the_o first_o ordayner_n of_o the_o grecian_a mystery_n a._n whosoever_o go_v to_o háde_n not_o initiate_v and_o not_o cleanse_v shall_v lie_v in_o the_o mire_n but_o he_o that_o come_v thither_o purge_v and_o initiate_v shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o go_n so_o zoroaster_n the_o great_a father_n of_o the_o magi_n in_o the_o east_n be_v say_v to_o have_v use_v this_o entrance_n into_o his_o discourse_n touch_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o other_o world_n 39●_n these_o thing_n write_v zoroaster_n the_o son_n of_o armenius_n by_o race_n a_o pamphylian_a have_v be_v dead_a in_o the_o war_n which_o i_o learn_v of_o the_o god_n be_v in_o hades_n as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n relate_v in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o stromata_fw-la where_o he_o also_o note_v that_o this_o zoroaster_n be_v that_o er_fw-mi the_o son_n of_o armenius_n a_o pamphylian_a of_o who_o plato_n write_v in_o the_o ten_o book_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o war_n he_o revive_v the_o twelve_o day_n after_o and_o be_v send_v back_o as_o a_o messenger_n to_o report_v unto_o man_n here_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v in_o the_o other_o world_n one_o part_n of_o who_o relation_n be_v this_o that_o he_o see_v certain_a 518._o gulf_n beneath_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o above_o in_o the_o heaven_n opposite_a one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o that_o the_o just_a be_v command_v by_o the_o judge_n that_o sit_v betwixt_o those_o gulf_n to_o go_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n up_o towards_o heaven_n but_o the_o wicked_a to_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o downward_o which_o testimony_n 330._o eusebius_n bring_v in_o among_o many_o other_o to_o show_v the_o consent_n that_o be_v betwixt_o plato_n and_o the_o hebrew_n in_o matter_n that_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v next_o to_o zoroaster_n come_v pythagoras_n who_o golden_a verse_n be_v conclude_v with_o this_o distich_n 310._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o thou_o shall_v leave_v the_o body_n and_o come_v unto_o a_o free_a heaven_n thou_o shall_v be_v a_o immortal_a god_n incorruptible_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o mortality_n any_o more_o so_o epicharmus_n the_o scholar_n of_o pythagoras_n stro●●_n if_o thou_o be_v godly_a in_o mind_n thou_o shall_v suffer_v no_o evil_a when_o thou_o be_v dead_a thy_o spirit_n shall_v remain_v above_o in_o heaven_n and_o pindarus_n 8._o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ungodly_a fly_n under_o the_o heaven_n or_o under_o the_o earth_n in_o cruel_a torment_n under_o the_o unavoidable_a yoke_n of_o evil_n but_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a dwell_v in_o heaven_n do_v praise_n that_o great_a bless_a one_o with_o song_n and_o hymn_n ci●ero_n in_o his_o tusculan_a question_n allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o 1._o ennius_n approve_v the_o common_a fame_n that_o romulus_n do_v lead_v his_o life_n in_o heaven_n with_o the_o go_n and_o in_o the_o six_o book_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n he_o bring_v in_o scipio_n teach_v that_o scipionis_fw-la unto_o all_o they_o which_o preserve_v assist_v and_o enlarge_v their_o country_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a place_n appoint_v in_o heau●n_n where_o they_o shall_v live_v bless_v world_n without_o end_n ibid._n such_o a_o life_n say_v he_o be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o into_o the_o company_n of_o these_o who_o have_v live_v and_o be_v now_o loose_v from_o their_o body_n do_v inhabit_v that_o place_n which_o thou_o see_v p●inting_v to_o the_o galaxiae_n or_o milky_a circle_n whereof_o we_o read_v thus_o also_o in_o astronom_n manilius_n a_o fortes_fw-la animae_fw-la dignatque_fw-la nomina_fw-la coelo_fw-la corporibus_fw-la resoluta_fw-la suis_fw-la terraeque_fw-la remissa_fw-la huc_fw-la migrant_a ex_fw-la orbe_fw-la suumque_fw-la habitantia_fw-la coelum_fw-la aethereos_fw-la vivunt_fw-la annos_fw-la mundoque_fw-la fruuntur_fw-la with_o damascius_n the_o philosopher_n of_o damascus_n this_o circle_n damasc_n be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o go_v to_o the_o hades_n in_o heaven_n against_o who_o johannes_n philoponus_n do_v reason_n thus_o from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n b._n if_o they_o pass_v through_o the_o galaxias_n or_o milky_a circle_n then_o this_o shall_v be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o hades_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o how_o can_v that_o be_v hades_n which_o be_v so_o lightsome_a to_o which_o they_o that_o maintain_v the_o other_o opinion_n will_v peradventure_o oppose_v that_o other_o common_a derivation_n of_o the_o word_n from_o the_o doric_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o please_v or_o to_o delight_v or_o that_o which_o 265._o plato_n do_v deliver_v in_o the_o name_n of_o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o see_v or_o know_v all_o good_a thing_n for_o there_o do_v socrates_n look_v to_o find_v such_o thing_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o speech_n which_o plato_n in_o his_o dialogue_n of_o the_o soul_n make_v he_o to_o use_v the_o same_o day_n that_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n g._n the_o soul_n be_v a_o invisible_a thing_n go_v hence_o into_o such_o another_o noble_a and_o pure_a and_o invisible_a place_n to_o hades_n in_o truth_n unto_o the_o good_a and_o wise_a god_n whither_o if_o god_n will_v my_o soul_n must_v present_o go_v which_o place_n be_v allege_v by_o 325._o eusebius_n to_o prove_v that_o 323._o in_o the_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n plato_n do_v differ_v in_o opinion_n nothing_o from_o moses_n the_o tale_n also_o which_o socrates_n there_o tell_v of_o the_o 399_o pure_a land_n seat_v above_o in_o the_o pure_a heaven_n though_o it_o have_v a_o number_n of_o toy_n add_v to_o it_o as_o tale_n use_v to_o have_v yet_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o both_o eusebius_n and_o origen_n do_v judge_n to_o have_v be_v take_v from_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o prophet_n touch_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n and_o for_o the_o rest_n origen_n refer_v we_o to_o plato_n interpreter_n affirm_v that_o 362._o they_o who_o handle_v his_o write_n more_o grave_o do_v expound_v this_o tale_n of_o he_o by_o way_n of_o allegory_n such_o another_o tale_n do_v the_o same_o philosopher_n relate_v in_o the_o dialogue_n which_o he_o intitule_v gorgias_n show_v that_o c._n among_o man_n he_o that_o lead_v his_o life_n righteous_o and_o holy_o shall_v when_o he_o be_v dead_a go_v unto_o the_o fortunate_a land_n and_o dwell_v in_o all_o happiness_n free_a from_o evil_n but_o he_o that_o lead_v it_o unrighteous_o and_o impious_o shall_v go_v unto_o the_o prison_n of_o punishment_n and_o just_a revenge_n which_o they_o call_v tartarus_n which_o theodoret_n bring_v in_o to_o prove_v that_o 155._o plato_n do_v exact_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v judgement_n to_o pass_v upon_o man_n in_o hades_n for_o be_v conversant_a with_o the_o hebrew_n say_v he_o in_o egypt_n he_o hear_v without_o doubt_n the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o 166._o take_v some_o thing_n from_o thence_o and_o mingle_v other_o thing_n therewith_o out_o of_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o greek_n make_v up_o his_o discourse_n of_o these_o thing_n among_o which_o mixture_n that_o which_o he_o have_v of_o the_o fortunate_a land_n be_v reckon_v by_o 157._o theodoret_n for_o one_o whereof_o you_o may_v read_v in_o 〈◊〉_d hesiod_n 2._o pindarus_n 3._o diodorus_n siculus_n serlorij_fw-la plutarch_n and_o graec._n josephus_n also_o who_o treat_v of_o the_o diverse_a sect_n that_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n show_v that_o the_o essenes_n borrow_v this_o opinion_n of_o the_o place_n of_o good_a man_n soul_n in_o a_o certain_a pleasant_a habitation_n beyond_o
away_o speak_v he_o these_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o be_v t●_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n by_o die_v for_o of_o hell_n there_o be_v a_o great_a question_n and_o what_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v thereof_o in_o all_o the_o place_n where_o it_o have_v occasion_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v hitherto_o s._n augustin_n who_o have_v reference_n to_o this_o great_a question_n when_o he_o say_v as_o have_v be_v 215._o before_o allege_v of_o hell_n neither_o have_n i_o have_v any_o experience_n as_o yet_o nor_o you_o and_o peradventure_o there_o shall_v be_v another_o way_n and_o by_o hell_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v for_o these_o thing_n be_v uncertain_a neither_o be_v there_o great_a question_n among_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o hell_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o there_o be_v of_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o faithful_a now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a neither_o be_v there_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o touch_v the_o hell_n into_o which_o our_o saviour_n go_v whether_o it_o be_v under_o the_o earth_n or_o above_o whether_o a_o darksome_a place_n or_o a_o lightsome_a whether_o a_o prison_n or_o a_o paradise_n then_o there_o be_v of_o the_o mansion_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a do_v now_o continue_v s._n hierome_n interpret_n those_o word_n of_o king_n ezechias_n esai_n 38.10_o i_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n say_v that_o this_o be_v mean_v 38._o either_o of_o the_o common_a law_n of_o nature_n or_o else_o of_o those_o gate_n from_o which_o that_o he_o be_v deliver_v the_o psalmist_n sing_v thou_o that_o lifte_v i_o up_o from_o the_o gate_n of_o death_n that_o i_o may_v show_v forth_o all_o thy_o praise_n in_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o zion_n psalm_n 9.13_o 14._o now_o as_o some_o of_o the_o father_n do_v expound_v our_o saviour_n go_v to_o hell_n of_o his_o descend_v into_o gehenna_n so_o other_o expound_v it_o of_o his_o go_v to_o hell_n according_a to_o the_o common_a law_n of_o nature_n the_o common_a law_n of_o nature_n i_o say_v which_o extend_v itself_o indifferent_o unto_o all_o the_o dead_a whether_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o of_o the_o old_a for_o as_o christ_n soul_n be_v in_o all_o point_v make_v like_o unto_o we_o sin_n only_o except_v while_o it_o be_v join_v with_o his_o body_n here_o in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n so_o when_o he_o have_v humble_v himself_o unto_o the_o death_n it_o become_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o his_o brethren_n even_o in_o that_o state_n of_o dissolution_n 1._o and_o so_o indeed_o the_o soul_n of_o jesus_n have_v experience_n of_o both_o for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o human_a soul_n and_o be_v out_o of_o the_o flesh_n do_v live_v and_o subsist_v it_o be_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n therefore_o and_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n even_o as_o his_o flesh_n be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n proceed_v from_o mary_n say_v eustathius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o that_o text_n of_o the_o psalm_n thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n where_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o hell_n you_o see_v he_o understand_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o place_n of_o human_a soul_n which_o be_v the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o world_n of_o spirit_n and_o by_o the_o dispose_n of_o christ_n soul_n there_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o soul_n conclude_v it_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o other_o man_n soul_n so_o saint_n hilary_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o 138._o psalm_n 138._o this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o human_a necessity_n say_v he_o that_o the_o body_n be_v bury_v the_o soul_n shall_v go_v to_o hell_n which_o descent_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o refuse_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o a_o true_a man_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o repeat_v it_o that_o de_fw-fr supernis_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la mortis_fw-la lege_fw-la descendit_fw-la he_o descend_v from_o the_o supernal_a to_o the_o infernal_a part_n by_o the_o law_n of_o death_n and_o upon_o the_o 53._o psalm_n more_o full_o 53._o to_o fulfil_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n he_o subject_v himself_o to_o death_n that_o be_v to_o a_o departure_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o pierce_v into_o the_o infernal_a seat_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v du●_n unto_o man_n so_o leo_n in_o one_o of_o his_o sermon_n upon_o our_o lord_n passion_n 8._o he_o do_v undergo_v the_o law_n of_o hell_n by_o die_v but_o do_v dissolve_v they_o by_o rise_v again_o and_o so_o do_v cut_v off_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o death_n that_o of_o eternal_a he_o may_v make_v it_o temporal_a so_o irenaeus_n have_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n ult_n converse_v three_o day_n where_o the_o dead_a be_v add_v that_o therein_o he_o ibid._n observe_v the_o law_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o first_o beget_v from_o the_o dead_a stay_v until_o the_o three_o day_n in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o afterward_o rise_v in_o his_o flesh_n then_o he_o draw_v from_o thence_o this_o general_a conclusion_n ibid._n see_v our_o lord_n go_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n where_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v than_o afterward_o rise_v again_o corporal_o and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v assume_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o disciple_n also_o for_o who_o sake_n the_o lord_n wrought_v these_o thing_n shall_v go_v to_o a_o invisible_a place_n appoint_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n and_o there_o shall_v abide_v until_o the_o resurrection_n wait_v for_o the_o resurrection_n and_o afterward_o receive_v their_o body_n and_o rise_v again_o perfect_o that_o be_v to_o say_v corporal_o even_o as_o our_o lord_n do_v rise_v again_o they_o shall_v so_o come_v unto_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o disciple_n above_o his_o master_n but_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v perfect_a if_o he_o be_v as_o his_o master_n the_o like_a collection_n do_v tertullian_n make_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o soul_n b._n if_o christ_n be_v god_n because_o he_o be_v also_o man_n die_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v bury_v according_a to_o the_o same_o do_v here_o also_o satisfy_v the_o law_n by_o perform_v the_o course_n of_o a_o humane_a death_n in_o hell_n neither_o do_v ascend_v into_o the_o high_a part_n of_o the_o heaven_n before_o he_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o may_v there_o make_v the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n partaker_n of_o himself_o thou_o have_v both_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o region_n of_o hell_n under_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o push_v they_o with_o the_o elbow_n who_o proud_o enough_o do_v not_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v fit_a for_o hell_n servant_n above_o their_o lord_n and_o disciple_n above_o their_o master_n scorn_v perhaps_o to_o take_v the_o comfort_n of_o expect_v the_o resurrection_n in_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n speak_v of_o the_o soul_n 7._o what_o be_v that_o say_v he_o which_o be_v translate_v unto_o the_o infernal_a part_n or_o hell_n after_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v detain_v there_o which_o be_v reserve_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n unto_o which_o christ_n by_o die_v do_v descend_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o patriarch_n i_o think_v where_o he_o make_v the_o hell_n unto_o which_o our_o saviour_n do_v descend_v to_o be_v the_o common_a receptacle_n not_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o patriarch_n alone_o but_o also_o of_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v now_o still_o separate_v from_o their_o body_n as_o be_v the_o place_n quò_fw-la universa_fw-la humanitas_fw-la trahitur_fw-la as_o he_o speak_v 58._o elsewhere_o in_o that_o book_n unto_o which_o all_o mankind_n be_v draw_v so_o novatianus_n after_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o very_a place_n 1._o which_o lie_v under_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o void_a of_o distinguish_v and_o order_v power_n for_o that_o be_v the_o place_n say_v he_o whither_o the_o soul_n both_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a be_v lead_v receive_v the_o fore-judgement_n of_o their_o future_a drome_n lactantius_n say_v that_o our_o saviour_n 19_o rise_v again_o ab_fw-la inferis_fw-la from_o hell_n but_o so_o he_o say_v also_o that_o the_o dead_a saint_n shall_v be_v 22._o raise_v up_o ab_fw-la inferis_fw-la at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n 154._o kill_v christ_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o deep_a
dead_a man_n in_o his_o sleep_n he_o think_v that_o he_o do_v see_v his_o soul_n but_o when_o he_o dream_v in_o like_a manner_n of_o one_o that_o be_v alive_a he_o make_v no_o doubt_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o his_o soul_n nor_o his_o body_n but_o a_o similitude_n of_o the_o man_n that_o do_v appear_v unto_o he_o as_o if_o not_o the_o soul●s_v but_o the_o similitude_n of_o dead_a man_n not_o know_v it_o may_v not_o also_o after_o the_o same_o sort_n appear_v so_o he_o tell_v of_o one_o eulogius_n a_o rhetorician_n in_o carthage_n who_o light_v upon_o a_o certain_a obscure_a place_n in_o cicero_n rhetoricke_n which_o he_o be_v the_o next_o day_n to_o read_v unto_o his_o scholar_n be_v so_o trouble_v therewith_o that_o at_o night_n he_o can_v scarce_o sleep_v ibid._n in_o which_o night_n say_v s._n augustin_n i_o expound_v unto_o he_o while_o he_o be_v in_o a_o dream_n that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v nay_o not_o i_o but_o my_o image_n i_o not_o know_v and_o so_o far_o beyond_o the_o sea_n either_o do_v or_o dream_v some_o other_o thing_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o care_v for_o his_o care_n the_o like_a he_o do_v also_o note_v to_o happen_v unto_o those_o that_o be_v in_o rapture_n and_o ecstasy_n 12._o for_o unto_o these_o also_o do_v appear_v image_n as_o well_o of_o the_o live_n as_o of_o the_o dead_a but_o after_o they_o have_v be_v restore_v unto_o their_o sense_n as_o many_o of_o the_o dead_a as_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v see_v with_o they_o they_o be_v true_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v neither_o do_v they_o mark_v who_o hear_v these_o thing_n that_o the_o image_n of_o some_o live_a man_n that_o be_v absent_a and_o ignorant_a of_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n see_v by_o they_o and_o for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o party_n possess_v he_o bring_v in_o a_o memorable_a instance_n of_o that_o which_o fall_v out_o in_o 17._o milan_n at_o the_o place_n of_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o martyr_n protasius_n and_o gervasius_n where_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o martyr_n that_o be_v dead_a but_o also_o of_o ambrose_n the_o bishop_n then_o live_v and_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v spare_v they_o he_o be_v otherwise_o employ_v and_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o thing_n when_o it_o be_v a_o do_v but_o as_o s._n augustin_n do_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n in_o that_o discourse_n that_o 10._o man_n be_v sometime_o lead_v into_o great_a error_n by_o deceitful_a dream_n or_o vision_n and_o that_o it_o be_v just_a that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v such_o thing_n so_o s._n chrysostom_n give_v a_o good_a admonition_n that_o little_a heed_n shall_v be_v take_v of_o the_o devil_n say_n 235.236_o what_o be_v it_o then_o say_v he_o that_o the_o devil_n do_v say_v i_o be_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o a_o monk_n sure_o for_o this_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o because_o the_o devil_n say_v it_o for_o they_o deceive_v their_o hearer_n and_o therefore_o paul_n act._n 16.18_o silence_a they_o although_o they_o speak_v truth_n least_o take_a occasion_n from_o thence_o they_o may_v mingle_v false_a thing_n again_o with_o those_o truth_n and_o get_v credit_n to_o themselves_o and_o touch_v dream_n and_o apparition_n of_o the_o dead_a he_o add_v further_a 256._o if_o at_o this_o time_n the_o dream_n that_o appear_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o they_o that_o have_v depart_v this_o life_n have_v deceive_v and_o corrupt_v many_o much_o more_o if_o this_o be_v once_o settle_v in_o man_n mind_n that_o many_o of_o those_o that_o be_v depart_v do_v return_v again_o unto_o we_o that_o wicked_a devil_n will_v plot_v a_o thousand_o guile_n and_o bring_v in_o much_o deceit_n into_o our_o life_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n god_n have_v shut_v up_o the_o door_n and_o do_v not_o suffer_v any_o of_o the_o decease_a to_o return_v back_o and_o tell_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v there_o lest_o he_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o shall_v bring_v in_o all_o his_o own_o device_n it_o be_v the_o complaint_n of_o synesius_n in_o his_o time_n that_o there_o be_v 54._o many_o both_o private_a man_n and_o priest_n too_o who_o feign_v certain_a dream_n which_o they_o call_v revelations·_n and_o in_o ancient_a write_n we_o meet_v with_o sundry_a vision_n which_o if_o they_o be_v true_o relate_v may_v more_o just_o be_v suspect_v to_o have_v be_v illusion_n of_o deceitful_a spirit_n than_o true_a apparition_n of_o bless_a either_o soul_n or_o angel_n he_o that_o will_v advise_o read_v over_o basilius_n seleuciensis_n his_o narration_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n thecla_n for_o example_n must_v either_o reject_v the_o work_n as_o strange_o corrupt_v or_o easy_o be_v draw_v to_o yield_v unto_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v for_o who_o can_v digest_v such_o relation_n and_o observation_n as_o these_o that_o 10._o they_o who_o watch_v the_o night_n that_o go_v before_o her_o festivitie_n do_v at_o that_o time_n yearly_a see_v she_o drive_v a_o fiery_a chariot_n in_o the_o air_n and_o remove_v from_o seleucia_n unto_o dalisandus_fw-la as_o a_o place_n which_o she_o do_v principal_o affect_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o commodity_n and_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o situation_n that_o both_o she_o and_o other_o of_o the_o saint_n decease_v do_v 21._o rejoice_v much_o in_o solitary_a place_n and_o do_v ordinary_o dwell_v in_o they_o that_o after_o her_o death_n she_o shall_v 24._o affect_v oratory_n and_o p●ëtry_n and_o be_v continual_o delight_v with_o such_o as_o do_v more_o accurate_o set_v forth_o her_o praise_n even_o as_o homer_n bring_v in_o apollo_n ●_o tickle_v at_o the_o heart_n with_o hear_v the_o song_n that_o be_v make_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o grecians_n of_o which_o he_o produce_v two_o special_a instance_n the_o one_o of_o alypius_n the_o grammarian_n unto_o who_o be_v forsake_v of_o the_o physician_n thecla_n he_o say_v do_v appear_v in_o the_o night_n and_o demand_v of_o he_o what_o he_o ail_v and_o what_o he_o will_v he_o to_o show_v his_o art_n and_o to_o win_v the_o virgin_n favour_n with_o the_o aptness_n of_o the_o verse_n return_v for_o a_o answer_n unto_o she_o that_o verse_n wherewith_o homer_n make_v achilles_n to_o answer_v his_o mother_n thetis_n in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o iliad_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thou_o know_v why_o shall_v i_o tell_v it_o thou_o that_o know_v all_o whereat_o 24._o the_o martyr_n smile_v and_o be_v delight_v partly_o with_o the_o man_n partly_o with_o the_o verse_n and_o wonder_v that_o he_o have_v answer_v so_o apt_o convey_v a_o certain_a round_a stone_n unto_o he_o with_o the_o touch_n whereof_o he_o be_v present_o set_v on_o foot_n from_o his_o long_a and_o perilous_a sickness_n for_o ●he_v other_o instance_n the_o writer_n report_v that_o which_o happen_v unto_o himself_o for_o 27._o the_o marty●_n say_v he_o be_v such_o a_o lover_n of_o learning_n and_o take_v such_o a_o delight_n in_o these_o oratorious_a praise_n that_o i_o will_v tell_v somewhat_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v to_o myself_o and_o for_o myself_o which_o the_o martyr_n who_o do_v it_o do_v know_v to_o have_v be_v do_v and_o that_o i_o lie_v not_o then_o he_o tell_v how_o have_v prepare_v a_o oration_n for_o her_o anniversarie_n festivitie_n the_o day_n before_o it_o shall_v be_v pronounce_v he_o be_v take_v with_o such_o a_o extreme_a pain_n in_o his_o ear_n that_o the_o auditory_a be_v like_a to_o be_v quite_o disappoint_v but_o that_o the_o martyr_n the_o same_o night_n appear_v unto_o he_o and_o shake_v he_o by_o the_o ear_n take_v all_o the_o pain_n away_o he_o add_v further_a that_o the_o same_o martyr_n use_v often_o to_o appear_v unto_o he_o in_o his_o study_n at_o other_o time_n but_o once_o more_o special_o while_o he_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o write_v this_o self_n same_o book_n for_o have_v begin_v to_o be_v 16._o weary_a of_o the_o labour_n the_o martyr_n say_v he_o seem_v to_o sit_v by_o close_a in_o my_o sight_n where_o i_o use_v to_o be_v at_o my_o book_n and_o to_o take_v the_o quaternion_n out_o of_o my_o hand_n in_o which_o i_o transcribe_v these_o thing_n out_o of_o my_o table-book_n yea_o and_o she_o seem_v unto_o i_o to_o read_v it_o and_o to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o smile_v and_o to_o show_v unto_o i_o by_o her_o look_n that_o she_o be_v please_v with_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v and_o that_o it_o behove_v i_o to_o finish_v this_o work_n and_o not_o to_o leave_v it_o unperfect_a these_o thing_n do_v i_o here_o repeat_v not_o with_o any_o intention_n to_o disgrace_v antiquity_n whereof_o i_o profess_v myself_o to_o be_v as_o great_a a_o admirer_n as_o any_o but_o to_o discover_v the_o first_o
adhere_v s●_n at_o this_o day_n in_o this_o cause_n how_o many_o o_o lord_n do_v now_o fight_v with_o pelagius_n for_o freewill_n against_o thy_o free_a grace_n and_o against_o paul_n the_o spiritual_a champion_n of_o grace_n ibid._n for_o the_o whole_a world_n almost_o be_v go_v after_o pelagius_n into_o error_n arise_v therefore_o o_o lord_n judge_v thy_o own_o cause_n and_o he_o that_o defend_v thou_o defend_v protect_v strengthen_v comfort_n to_o who_o judgement_n i_o also_o now_o leave_v these_o 14._o vain_a defender_n or_o as_o s._n augustine_n right_o censure_v they_o deceiver_n and_o puffer_v up_o and_o presumptuous_a extoller_n of_o freewill_n of_o merit_n in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o unspotted_a church_n of_o rome_n do_v ●each_v tha●_n man_n for_o his_o meritorious_a work_n receive_v through_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o bliss_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n but_o our_o challenger_n i_o suppose_v will_v hardly_o find_v one_o father_n either_o of_o the_o spot_a or_o unspotted_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o ever_o speak_v so_o babish_o herein_o as_o he_o make_v they_o all_o to_o do_v that_o man_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n may_v do_v meritorious_a work_n we_o have_v read_v in_o divers_a author_n and_o in_o divers_a meaning_n but_o after_o these_o work_n do_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v receive_v through_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o bliss_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n be_v such_o a_o piece_n of_o gibberish_n as_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o before_o now_o i_o have_v ever_o meet_v withal_o even_o in_o babel_n itself_o for_o with_o they_o that_o understand_v what_o they_o speak_v assistance_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o do_v of_o the_o work_n not_o to_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o simple_o to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n for_o his_o meritorious_a work_n take_v merit_n here_o as_o the_o romanist_n in_o this_o question_n will_v have_v it_o take_v receive_v through_o god_n grace_n the_o bliss_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n be_v to_o speak_v flat_a contrariety_n and_o to_o conjoin_v those_o thing_n that_o can_v possible_o be_v couple_v together_o for_o that_o conclusion_n of_o bernard_n be_v most_o certain_a 67._o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o grace_n to_o enter_v where_o merit_n have_v take_v possession_n because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o apostle_n determination_n rom._n 11.6_o if_o it_o be_v of_o grace_n it_o be_v no_o more_o of_o work_n or_o else_o be_v grace_n no_o more_o grace_n neither_o do_v we_o therefore_o take_v away_o the_o reward_n because_o we_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n we_o know_v that_o in_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n there_o be_v great_a reward_n psal._n 19.11_o and_o that_o unto_o he_o who_o sow_v righteousness_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o sure_a reward_n prov._n 11.18_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whence_o he_o that_o sow_v in_o this_o manner_n must_v expect_v to_o reap_v so_o great_a and_o so_o sure_a a_o harvest_n whether_o from_o god_n justice_n which_o he_o must_v do_v if_o he_o stand_v as_o the_o jesuit_n will_v have_v he_o do_v upon_o merit_n or_o from_o his_o mercy_n as_o a_o recompense_n free_o bestow_v out_o of_o god_n gracious_a bounty_n and_o not_o in_o justice_n due_a for_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o work_n perform_v which_o question_n we_o think_v the_o prophet_n hosea_n have_v sufficient_o resolve_v when_o he_o bid_v we_o sow_v to_o ourselves_o in_o righteousness_n and_o reap_v in_o mercy_n hose_n 10.12_o neither_o do_v we_o hereby_o any_o whit_n detract_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o axiom_n that_o god_n will_v give_v every_o man_n accord_v to_o his_o work_n for_o still_o the_o question_n remain_v the_o very_a same_o whether_o god_n may_v not_o judge_v a_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n when_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n as_o well_o as_o when_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o justice_n and_o we_o think_v here_o that_o the_o prophet_n david_n have_v full_o clear_v the_o case_n in_o that_o one_o sentence_n psal._n 62.12_o with_o thou_o o_o lord_n be_v mercy_n for_o thou_o rewarde_a every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n original_o therefore_o and_o in_o itself_o we_o hold_v that_o this_o reward_n proceed_v mere_o from_o god_n free_a bounty_n and_o mercy_n but_o accidental_o in_o regard_n that_o god_n have_v tie_v himself_o by_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n to_o confer_v such_o a_o reward_n we_o grant_v that_o it_o now_o prove_v in_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o justice_n even_o as_o in_o forgive_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o in_o itself_o all_o man_n know_v to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o mercy_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a 1_o joh._n 1.9_o namely_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o faithful_a performance_n of_o his_o promise_n for_o promise_v we_o see_v among_o honest_a man_n be_v count_v a_o due_a debt_n but_o the_o thing_n promise_v be_v free_a and_o on_o our_o part_n altogether_o undeserved_a if_o the_o promiser_n do_v not_o perform_v and_o prove_v not_o to_o be_v so_o good_a as_o his_o word_n he_o can_v not_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o do_v i_o wrong_n but_o rather_o to_o wrong_v himself_o by_o impair_n his_o own_o credit_n and_o therefore_o aquinas_n himself_o confess_v 3._o that_o god_n be_v not_o hereby_o simple_o make_v a_o debtor_n to_o we_o but_o to_o himself_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o his_o own_o ordinance_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v thus_o be_v moses_n careful_a to_o put_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n in_o mind_n touch_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o our_o eternal_a habitation_n in_o heaven_n that_o it_o be_v a_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o not_o of_o merit_n which_o god_n do_v give_v they_o to_o possess_v not_o for_o their_o righteousness_n or_o for_o their_o upright_a bear_v it_o but_o that_o he_o may_v perform_v the_o word_n which_o he_o swear_v unto_o their_o father_n abraham_n izhak_n and_o jacob_n deut._n 9.5_o whereupon_o the_o levite_n say_v in_o their_o prayer_n unto_o god_n nehem._n 9.8_o thou_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n to_o give_v unto_o his_o seed_n the_o land_n of_o the_o canaanite_n and_o have_v perform_v thy_o word_n because_o thou_o be_v just_o now_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v a_o like_a promise_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o jam._n 1.12_o therefore_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o stick_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o attribute_v this_o also_o to_o god_n justice_n henceforth_o say_v he_o 2_o tim._n 4.8_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v upon_o which_o place_n bernard_n in_o his_o book_n of_o grace_n and_o freewill_n say_v most_o sweet_o arbitrio_fw-la that_o therefore_o which_o paul_n expect_v be_v a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n but_o of_o god_n righteousness_n not_o his_o own_o for_o it_o be_v just_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v what_o he_o owe_v and_o he_o owe_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o this_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n presume_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n but_o this_o will_v not_o content_v our_o jesuit_n unless_o we_o yield_v unto_o they_o 18.20_o that_o we_o do_v as_o proper_o and_o true_o merit_v reward_n when_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o do_v well_o as_o we_o do_v merit_v punishment_n when_o without_o grace_n we_o do_v evil_a so_o say_v maldonat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v unless_o we_o maintain_v 17._o that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o just_a person_n do_v merit_v eternal_a life_n condign_o not_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o god_n covenant_n and_o acceptation_n but_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o work_n itself_o so_o that_o in_o a_o good_a work_n proceed_v from_o grace_n there_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a proportion_n and_o equality_n unto_o the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a life_n so_o say_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n for_o the_o further_a open_v whereof_o vasquez_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v in_o order_n these_o three_o distinct_a proposition_n first_o ●nit_fw-la that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o just_a person_n be_v of_o themselves_o without_o any_o covenant_n and_o acceptation_n worthy_a of_o the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o have_v a_o equal_a value_n of_o condignity_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a glory_n second_o 7._o that_o no_o accession_n of_o dignity_n do_v come_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o just_a by_o the_o merit_n or_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o have_v otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o same_o grace_n bestow_v liberal_o by_o god_n alone_o without_o
the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o he_o look_v into_o every_o one_o of_o they_o more_o near_o he_o may_v perhaps_o find_v that_o we_o be_v not_o such_o stranger_n to_o the_o original_n and_o first_o breed_n of_o these_o romish_a error_n as_o he_o do_v imagine_v it_o now_o remain_v on_o his_o part_n that_o he_o make_v good_a what_o he_o have_v undertake_v namely_o that_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o all_o the_o above_o mention_v point_n of_o his_o religion_n he_o produce_v both_o good_a and_o certain_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o the_o general_a consent_n likewise_o of_o the_o saint_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o as_o i_o advise_v he_o to_o spare_v his_o pain_n in_o labour_v to_o prove_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o see_v i_o before_o hand_n ready_o to_o have_v yield_v unto_o so_o i_o wish_v he_o also_o not_o to_o forget_v his_o own_o motion_n make_v in_o the_o percloase_v of_o his_o challenge_n that_o all_o may_v be_v do_v with_o christian_a charity_n and_o sincerity_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o instruction_n of_o they_o that_o be_v astray_o finis_fw-la fault_n escape_v page_n 10._o line_n 15._o for_o once_o read_v one_o p._n 18._o l._n 8._o as_o also_o p._n 19_o l._n 1._o and_o 113._o l._n 2._o radbertus_n p._n 30._o l._n 9_o canonical_a p._n 63._o l._n 28._o bread_n and_o wine_n p._n 67._o l._n 9_o or_o p._n 71._o l._n 12._o for_o wine_n read_v blood_n ibid._n l._n 21._o for_o second_o read_v three_o p._n 77._o in_o t●e_v marg●nt_a at_o the_o very_a beginning_n add_v x._o lanfranc_n lib._n de_fw-fr sacram._n eucharist_n contra_fw-la berengar_fw-la pag._n 85._o lin_v 15._o for_o he_o read_v god_n p._n 103._o l._n 20._o set_v p._n 163._o lin_v 12_o 13._o cross_n out_o those_o word_n then_o in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n pag._n 271._o in_o the_o margin_n lin_v 16._o for_o id._n put_v hieronym_n pag._n 326._o in_o the_o margin_n lin_v 17._o marcellam_fw-la pag._n 341._o lin_v 5._o christian._n pag._n 352._o l._n 5._o cross_n out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pag._n 405._o l._n 20._o put_v out_o the_o word_n jesuite_n and_o in_o the_o last_o line_n of_o the_o margin_n aft●r_v quaest_n 12._o add_v artic_a 10._o disput_n 7._o conclus_fw-la 6._o p●g_n 444._o lin_v ul●_n pitsio_n pag._n 449._o in_o marg_n l._n 35._o naclantus_fw-la pag._n 448._o at_o the_o ast●risc_a *_o lin_v 14._o add_v in_o the_o margin_n ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la deinceps_fw-la doceatur_fw-la communiter_fw-la atque_fw-la praedicetur_fw-la crucem_fw-la &_o imaginem_fw-la crucifixi_fw-la ceterasque_fw-la imagine_v sanctorum_fw-la in_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la memoriam_fw-la &_o honorem_fw-la quo●_n figurant_fw-la ac_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la loca_fw-la &_o reliquias_fw-la processionibus_fw-la gen●_n flexionibus_fw-la inclinationibus_fw-la thurificationibus_fw-la deosculationibus_fw-la oblationibus_fw-la luminarium_fw-la accensionibus_fw-la &_o peregrinationibus_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la alijs_fw-la quibuscunque_fw-la modis_fw-la &_o formis_fw-la quibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la &_o predecessorum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la temporibus_fw-la fieri_fw-la consuevit_fw-la venerari_fw-la debere_fw-la gu●lh●lm_n lyndewode_n provincial_a lib._n 5._o the_o heretic_n cap._n nullus_fw-la quoque_fw-la pag._n 451._o l._n 12._o m●rsilius_n pag._n 453._o in_o the_o margin_n lin_v 12._o and_o 26._o and_o pag._n 454._o l._n 9_o for_o prophetic_a read_v protreptic_a pag._n 456._o marg_n lin_v 38._o manuum_fw-la pag._n 463._o marg_n lin_v 9_o patres_fw-la a_o catalogve_n of_o the_o author_n here_o allege_v dispose_v according_o to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v account_v to_o have_v live_v anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 40_o nicodemus_n the_o author_n of_o the_o counterfeit_a gospel_n attribute_v unto_o he_o live_v within_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n be_v cite_v by_o gregorius_n turonensis_n 43._o thaddaeus_n vouch_v by_o eusebius_n 70._o clemens_n i._n romanus_n episc_fw-la count_v the_o author_n of_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n 70._o dionysius_n areopagita_n the_o book_n that_o bear_v his_o name_n seem_v to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o four_o or_o five_o age_n after_o christ._n 100_o ignatius_n antiochenus_fw-la 120._o hermes_n 163._o justinus_n martyr_n 170._o theophilus_n antiochenus_fw-la 180._o irenaeus_n lugdunensis_n 180._o tatianus_n 190._o maximus_n out_o of_o who_o the_o dialogue_n against_o the_o marcionist_n attribute_v to_o origen_n be_v collect_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o large_a fragment_n cite_v out_o of_o he_o by_o eusebius_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o book_n de_fw-fr praeparatione_fw-la euangelicâ_fw-la 200._o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 200._o tertullianus_n 210._o caius_n 220._o hippolytus_n martyr_n 230._o origenes_n 230._o ammonius_n 230._o minutius_n felix_n 240._o novatianus_n 250._o gregorius_n neocaesareensis_n 250._o cyprianus_n 260._o zeno_n veronensis_n 270._o victorinus_n pictaviensis_n 290._o pamphilus_n martyr_n 300._o arnobius_n 300._o lactantius_n 303._o concilium_fw-la sinuessanum_fw-la supposititium_fw-la 310._o concilium_fw-la eliberinum_n seu_fw-la illiberitanum_n 325._o concilium_fw-la romanum_fw-la sub_fw-la silvestro_n supposititium_fw-la 325._o concilium_fw-la nicaenum_n uniu●rsale_a i._n 325._o macarius_n hierosolymitanus_n 330._o eusebius_n caesareensis_fw-la 330._o juvencus_n 340._o eusebius_n emesenus_n 340._o athanasius_n alexandrinus_n 350._o eustathius_n antiochenus_fw-la 350._o julius_n firmicus_n maternus_n 350._o acacius_n caesareensis_fw-la 359._o conciliabula_fw-la arrianorum_n nicaen_fw-la constantinop_n sirmiens_n &_o ariminens_n 360._o didymus_n 360._o hilarius_n pictaviensis_n 360._o titus_n bostrensis_n 364._o concilium_fw-la laodicenum_n 370._o macarius_n aegyptius_n 370._o cyrillus_n hierosolymitanus_n 370._o asterius_n amaseae_fw-la episc_fw-la 370._o optatus_n 370._o ambrose_n mediolanensis_fw-la episc_fw-la 370._o basilius_n caesareensis_fw-la 370._o gregorius_n nazianzenus_n 370._o aerius_n haereticus_fw-la 380._o caesarius_n 380._o gregorius_n nyssenus_n 380._o nectarius_n 380._o pacianus_n 380._o prudentius_n 380._o philastrius_n 380._o euagrius_n ponticus_n 380._o amphilochius_n 381._o concilium_fw-la constantinopolitanum_n universale_fw-la ii_o 390._o hieronymus_n 390._o paula_n &_o eustochium_fw-la apud_fw-la eund_n 390._o epiphanius_n 390._o ruffinus_n 390._o coelius_n sedulius_n 390._o paulinus_n mediolanensis_fw-la 400._o io._n chrysostomus_n cujus_fw-la epistolam_fw-la ad_fw-la caesarium_fw-la monachus_fw-la quam_fw-la in_fw-la quaestionem_fw-la vocant_fw-la pontificij_fw-la citatam_fw-la invenio_fw-la in_o collectaneis_fw-la contra_fw-la severianos_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la fr._n turriani_n version_n habentur_fw-la in_o 4._o tomo_fw-la antiquae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la henr._n canisij_n pag._n 238._o &_o in_o fine_a libri_fw-la io._n damasceni_n contra_fw-la acephalos_fw-la ibid._n pag._n 211._o ubi_fw-la postrema_fw-la verba_fw-la testimonij_fw-la á_o nobis_fw-la citati_fw-la pag._n 64.65_o turrianus_n ita_fw-la transtulit_fw-la sic_fw-la etiam_fw-la híc_fw-la divinâ_fw-la naturâ_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la insidente_fw-la unum_fw-la filium_fw-la unam_fw-la personam_fw-la utrumque_fw-la constituit_fw-la 400._o marcus_n eremita_fw-la 400._o polychronius_n 400._o hesychius_n presbyter_n 410._o palladius_n lausiacae_fw-la histostoriae_fw-la author_n 410._o pelagius_n haereticus_fw-la 410._o augustinus_n 410._o philo_z carpathius_n 410._o synesius_n 414._o theodorus_n daphnopatus_n by_o henr._n oraeus_n refer_v to_o this_o year_n i_o know_v not_o by_o what_o warrant_n 418._o concilium_fw-la africanum_n universale_fw-la carthagine_v habitum_fw-la contra_fw-la pelagium_fw-la 420._o maximus_fw-la taurinensis_n 424._o hilarius_n arelatensis_fw-la 430._o io._n cassianus_n 430._o vincentius_n lirinensis_n 430._o author_n operis_fw-la imperfecti_fw-la in_o matthaeum_n 430._o cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n 430._o synodus_fw-la alexandrina_n contra_fw-la nestorium_fw-la 430._o theodoretus_n 430._o proclus_n cyzicenus_n 431._o concilium_fw-la ephesinum_n universale_fw-la iii_o 440._o prosper_v aquitanicus_n 440._o socrates_n historicus_fw-la 440._o sozomenus_n 440._o eucherius_n lugdunensis_n 440._o petrus_n c●rysologus_n 450._o leo._n i._n 450._o primasius_n 451._o concilium_fw-la chalcedonense_n universale_fw-la four_o 460._o basilius_n seleuciensis_n 460._o victor_n antiochenus_fw-la 460_o salvianus_n massiliensis_n 476._o gelasius_n cyzicenus_n 490._o faustus_n regiensis_fw-la seu_fw-la reiensis_fw-la 490._o gennadius_n massiliensis_n 490._o gelasius_n papa_n i._n 494._o concilium_fw-la romanum_fw-la i._o sub_fw-la gelasio_n 500_o paschasius_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la diaconus_fw-la 500_o olympiodorus_n 500_o andrea_n caesareensis_fw-la stephanus_n gobarus_fw-la haereticus_fw-la 507._o laurentius_n novariensis_n 510._o ennodius_n ticinensis_n 520._o aurelius_n cassiodorus_n 520._o eusebius_n gallicanus_n 520._o caesari●s_fw-la arelatensis_fw-la 520._o fulgentius_n ruspensis_fw-la episc_fw-la 520._o johannes_n maxentius_n 527._o ephraem_n antiochenus_fw-la 527._o agapetus_n diaconus_fw-la 529._o concilium_fw-la arausican_n ii_o 530._o fulgentius_n ferrandus_fw-la 530._o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la 530._o benedictus_fw-la monachus_n 530._o procopius_n gazaeus_n 540._o arator_fw-la 553._o concilium_fw-la constantinopolitanum_n universale_fw-la v._o 560._o andrea_n hierosolymitanus_n cretensis_n archiepisc_fw-la 560._o dracontius_n 570._o cresconius_n 580._o venantius_n fortunatus_n 580._o johannes_n climacus_n 589._o council_n toletan_n iii_o 600._o gregorius_n i._n 600._o johan._n nesteuta_n agapius_n manichaeus_n 610._o eustratius_n constantinopolitanus_n 630._o isidorus_n hispalensis_n 633._o concilium_fw-la toletanun_n four_o 640._o maximus_fw-la monachus_n 640._o jonas_n 640._o anastasius_n
honour_v and_o magnify_v thou_o o_o giver_n of_o life_n 〈◊〉_d thou_o be_v put_v in_o the_o tomb_n be_v voluntary_o make_v dead_a and_o do_v empty_v all_o the_o palace_n of_o hell_n o_o immortal_a king_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a with_o thy_o resurrection_n 128._o thou_o who_o spoyl_v hell_n by_o thy_o burial_n be_v mindful_a of_o i_o hitherto_o also_o belong_v that_o of_o prudentius_n in_o his_o apotheosis_n tumuloque_fw-la inferna_fw-la refringens_fw-la regna_fw-la resurgentes_fw-la secum_fw-la jubet_fw-la ire_n sepultos_fw-la coelum_fw-la habitat_fw-la terris_fw-la intervenit_fw-la abdita_fw-la rumpit_fw-la tartara_fw-la vera_fw-la fides_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la totus_fw-la ubique_fw-la est_fw-la where_o in_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o grave_n do_v break_v up_o the_o infernal_a kingdom_n and_o command_v those_o that_o be_v bury_v to_o rise_v up_o with_o he_o he_o have_v reference_n unto_o that_o part_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o it_o be_v record_v that_o the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o go_v into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o appear_v unto_o many_o matth._n 27.52_o 53._o upon_o which_o place_n s._n hilary_n write_v thus_o 33._o enlighten_v the_o darkness_n of_o death_n and_o shine_v in_o the_o obscure_a place_n of_o hell_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v see_v at_o the_o present_a he_o take_v away_o the_o spoil_n of_o death_n itself_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n write_v s._n ambrose_n also_o 5_o neither_o do_v his_o sepulchre_n want_v a_o miracle_n for_o when_o he_o be_v anoint_a by_o joseph_n and_o bury_v in_o his_o tomb_n by_o a_o new_a kind_n of_o work_n he_o that_o be_v dead_a himself_o do_v open_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o dead_a his_o body_n indeed_o do_v lie_v in_o the_o grave_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v free_a among_o the_o dead_a do_v give_v liberty_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v place_v in_o hell_n dissolve_v the_o law_n of_o death_n for_o his_o flesh_n be_v in_o the_o tomb_n but_o his_o power_n do_v work_v from_o heaven_n which_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a commentary_n upon_o that_o sentence_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n attribute_v unto_o s._n chrysostom_n chrysostom_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o there_o also_o he_o may_v not_o want_v a_o miracle_n for_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n arise_v with_o christ._n namely_o chrysost._n hell_n render_v up_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n alive_a again_o as_o either_o the_o same_o or_o another_o author_n that_o go_v under_o the_o like_a name_n of_o chrysostom_n do_v elsewhere_o direct_o affirm_v which_o be_v a_o further_a confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v deliver_v by_o ruffinus_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o descent_n into_o hell_n that_o the_o substance_n thereof_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o burial_n for_o what_o other_o hell_n can_v we_o imagine_v it_o to_o be_v but_o the_o grave_a that_o thus_o receive_v and_o give_v up_o the_o body_n of_o man_n depart_v this_o life_n and_o hitherto_o also_o may_v be_v refer_v that_o famous_a say_n of_o christ_n descend_v alone_a &_o ascend_v with_o a_o multitude_n which_o we_o meet_v withal_o in_o four_o several_a place_n of_o antiquity_n first_o in_o the_o h●ads_n of_o the_o sermon_n of_o thaddaeus_n as_o they_o be_v report_v by_o eusebius_n out_o of_o the_o syriack_n record_v of_o the_o city_n of_o edessa_n ult_n he_o be_v crucify_v and_o descend_v into_o hades_n or_o hell_n and_o break_v the_o rampiere_v never_o break_v before_o since_o the_o beginning_n and_o rise_v again_o and_o raise_v up_o with_o he_o those_o dead_a that_o have_v sleep_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o descend_v alone_o but_o ascend_v to_o his_o father_n with_o a_o great_a multitude_n second_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n unto_o the_o trallian_o trallian_n he_o be_v true_o and_o not_o in_o opinion_n crucify_v and_o die_v those_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n behold_v he_o those_o in_o heaven_n as_o the_o incorporeal_a nature_n those_o in_o earth_n to_o wit_v the_o jew_n and_o the_o roman_n and_o such_o man_n as_o be_v present_a at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o lord_n be_v crucify_v those_o under_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o multitude_n that_o rise_v up_o together_o with_o the_o lord_n for_o many_o body_n say_v he_o of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o he_o descend_v into_o hades_n or_o hell_n alone_o but_o return_v with_o a_o multitude_n and_o break_v the_o rampiere_v that_o have_v stand_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o overthrow_v the_o partition_n thereof_o three_o in_o the_o disputation_n of_o macarius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a 24._o after_o death_n we_o be_v carry_v into_o hades_n or_o hell_n christ_n take_v upon_o he_o this_o also_o and_o descend_v voluntary_o into_o it_o he_o be_v not_o detain_v as_o we_o but_o descend_v only_o for_o he_o be_v not_o subject_v unto_o death_n but_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o death_n and_o descend_v alone_o he_o return_v with_o a_o multitude_n for_o he_o be_v that_o spiritual_a grain_n of_o wheat_n fall_v for_o we_o into_o the_o earth_n and_o die_v in_o the_o flesh_n who_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n raise_v up_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o bring_v forth_o for_o fruit_n the_o resurrection_n of_o all_o mankind_n four_o in_o the_o catechise_n of_o cyrill_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o word_n be_v these_o 14._o i_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o of_o this_o i_o have_v many_o witness_n both_o out_o of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n &_o from_o the_o witness_n and_o operation_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n of_o he_o that_o rise_v again_o of_o he_o i_o say_v that_o descend_v into_o hades_n or_o hell_n alone_o but_o ascend_v with_o many_o for_o he_o do_v descend_v unto_o death_n &_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o sleep_v be_v raise_v by_o he_o which_o resurrection_n he_o seem_v afterward_o to_o make_v common_a unto_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o die_v before_o our_o saviour_n ibid._n all_o the_o righteous_a man_n say_v he_o be_v deliver_v who_o death_n have_v devour_v for_o it_o become_v the_o proclaim_v king_n to_o be_v the_o deliverer_n of_o those_o good_a proclaymer_n of_o he_o then_o do_v every_o one_o of_o the_o righteous_a say_v o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n o_o hell_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n for_o the_o conqueror_n have_v deliver_v we_o wherewith_o we_o may_v compare_v that_o say_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n reduxisse_fw-la if_o it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n that_o lazarus_n be_v four_o day_n dead_a shall_v come_v forth_o much_o more_o that_o all_o they_o who_o be_v dead_a of_o old_a shall_v appear_v together_o alive_a which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o future_a resurrection_n for_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v say_v the_o text_n and_o these_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o armenian_n 123.124_o according_a to_o his_o body_n which_o be_v dead_a he_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_n but_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n which_o do_v live_v he_o over_o come_v hell_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o three_o day_n he_o rise_v again_o but_o withal_o rays●d_v up_o the_o soul_n or_o person_n of_o the_o faithful_a together_o with_o he_o and_o give_v hope_n thereby_o that_o our_o body_n also_o shall_v rise_v again_o like_a unto_o he_o at_o his_o second_o come_v of_o those_o who_o arise_v with_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o grave_a or_o as_o ancient_o they_o use_v to_o speak_v from_o hell_n two_o there_o be_v who_o the_o father_n nominate_v in_o particular_a adam_n and_o job._n of_o job_n s._n ambrose_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n 8._o have_v hear_v what_o god_n have_v speak_v in_o he_o and_o have_v understand_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o to_o come_v into_o the_o earth_n but_o that_o he_o be_v also_o to_o descend_v into_o hell_n to_o that_o he_o may_v raise_v up_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v then_o do_v for_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a and_o a_o example_n of_o the_o future_a he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v o_o that_o thou_o will_v keep_v i_o in_o hell_n that_o thou_o will_v hide_v i_o until_o thy_o wrath_n be_v past_a and_o that_o thou_o will_v appoint_v i_o a_o time_n in_o which_o thou_o will_v remember_v i_o job._n 14.13_o in_o which_o word_n he_o affirm_v that_o job_n do_v prophesy_v ibid._n that_o he_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o passion_n of_o